Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n know_v scripture_n speak_v 7,222 5 4.9707 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54199 Quakerism, a new nick-name for old Christianity being an answer to a book entituled Quakerism no Christianity, subscribed by J. Faldo : in which the rise, doctrine and practice of the abused Quakers are truly, briefly and fully declared and vindicated from the false charges ... made by that adversary with a key opening the true meaning of some of their doctrine ... / by one of them and a sufferer with them in all their sufferings, William Penn. Penn, William, 1644-1718. 1672 (1672) Wing P1347; ESTC R30094 154,759 271

There are 31 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

give_v to_o all_o to_o profit_v with_o and_o that_o the_o child_n of_o god_n be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n that_o be_v send_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o anoint_v that_o be_v in_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v able_a to_o teach_v they_o all_o thing_n be_v any_o measure_n part_n or_o parcel_v of_o the_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n write_n i_o can_v yet_o think_v he_o so_o blind_v as_o ignorant_a or_o envious_a as_o he_o be_v either_o these_o passage_n be_v no_o scripture_n or_o that_o gross_a absurdity_n must_v follow_v §_o 15._o but_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v mistake_v ever_o since_o some_o of_o we_o thought_n paul_n hobson_n '_o s_z mumble_v through_o a_o trunk_n &_o a_o hole_n in_o the_o 27._o wall_n to_o be_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o be_v it_o as_o true_a as_o it_o be_v in_o many_o thing_n false_a it_o show_v the_o profaneness_n of_o that_o anabaptist_n who_o dare_v to_o take_v the_o lord_n name_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o counterfeit_v a_o solemn_a commission_n to_o a_o poor_a whimsical_a wretch_n and_o as_o it_o happen_v out_o of_o a_o spirit_n of_o covetousness_n and_o inhospitality_n for_o he_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o give_v he_o long_o entertainment_n so_o that_o not_o know_v how_o better_a to_o be_v rid_v of_o he_o then_o to_o forge_v a_o commission_n wicked_o contrive_v a_o passage_n into_o the_o chamber_n where_o the_o man_n lay_v and_o through_o a_o trunk_n profane_o utter_v a_o kind_n of_o commission_n to_o go_v to_o a_o certain_a place_n where_o i_o can_v tell_v but_o i_o be_o sure_a as_o the_o story_n go_v out_o of_o his_o house_n to_o who_o his_o little_a victual_n have_v be_v a_o burden_n a_o practice_n for_o the_o avarice_n profaneness_n and_o abuse_v of_o it_o to_o be_v abhor_v and_o detest_a of_o all_o sober_a men._n and_o i_o think_v the_o man_n more_o excusable_a under_o his_o mistake_n then_o major_a hobson_n who_o venture_v into_o so_o much_o wickedness_n &_o that_o with_o design_n to_o bring_v he_o into_o it_o it_o be_v true_a that_o such_o a_o man_n there_o be_v that_o he_o go_v to_o major_a hobson_n house_n that_o he_o deal_v so_o wicked_o by_o the_o man_n to_o be_v rid_v of_o he_o that_o the_o man_n have_v be_v among_o we_o but_o as_o his_o practice_n show_v he_o to_o be_v none_o of_o we_o so_o be_v not_o any_o of_o his_o imagination_n countenance_v by_o we_o but_o sharp_o rebuke_v and_o therefore_o that_o part_n of_o j._n faldo_n reflection_n a_o lie_n yet_o since_o he_o have_v get_v this_o story_n by_o the_o end_n i_o will_v see_v how_o much_o better_o ground_v j._n faldo_n will_v be_v upon_o his_o principle_n against_o a_o quaker_n shall_v he_o be_v so_o impious_a as_o to_o put_v the_o same_o profane_a abuse_n upon_o he_o suppose_v j._n faldo_n either_o by_o a_o trunk_n or_o hole_n through_o a_o wall_n or_o one_o of_o the_o new_a invent_v trumpet_n that_o carry_v a_o voice_n a_o mile_n shall_v have_v as_o far_o as_o word_n go_v a_o very_a solemn_a commission_n to_o go_v preach_v the_o gospel_n in_o any_o other_o place_n than_o barnet_n where_o i_o hear_v he_o now_o live_v within_o this_o isle_n or_o some_o more_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o not_o only_o once_o or_o twice_o but_o many_o time_n join_v with_o threat_n and_o promise_n i_o will_v suppose_v his_o inclination_n will_v lie_v at_o home_n unless_o more_o be_v to_o be_v get_v a_o infallible_a ground_n of_o motion_n with_o many_o of_o his_o tribe_n but_o i_o will_v know_v of_o he_o which_o way_n or_o upon_o what_o foot_n he_o will_v receive_v or_o reject_v such_o a_o commission_n the_o scripture_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n in_o particular_a in_o general_n it_o will_v not_o reach_v it_o because_o this_o be_v no_o other_o gospel_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v require_v to_o preach_v then_o that_o which_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v according_a to_o scripture_n i_o say_v with_o what_o will_v he_o relish_v savour_n or_o try_v this_o voice_n will_v he_o reject_v it_o because_o the_o scripture_n do_v not_o particular_o own_v it_o there_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n why_o he_o shall_v embrace_v it_o because_o it_o do_v not_o particular_o deny_v it_o how_o will_v he_o do_v then_o why_o perhaps_o he_o will_v go_v because_o there_o be_v no_o general_n in_o scripture_n that_o withstand_v it_o but_o how_o do_v he_o know_v that_o so_o many_o good_a word_n in_o themselves_o be_v speak_v from_o god_n and_o not_o to_o deceive_v tempt_v or_o abuse_v he_o it_o be_v true_a the_o scripture_n have_v general_a denial_n to_o false_a spirit_n and_o general_a testimony_n to_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o true_a one_o but_o still_o here_o be_v but_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v that_o the_o voice_n or_o spirit_n be_v true_a or_o false_a it_o be_v not_o unscriptural_a unreasonable_a nor_o improbable_a alas_o for_o john_n faldo_n have_v all_o his_o preach_v pray_v write_v etc._n etc._n no_o better_o foundation_n then_o hear-say_n imitation_n strong_a fancy_n and_o external_a sense_n can_v he_o not_o savour_n and_o relish_v spirit_n as_o well_o as_o word_n if_o not_o he_o may_v true_o be_v style_v a_o man_n of_o word_n but_o void_a of_o that_o spirit_n which_o try_v spirit_n and_o give_v right_o discern_v to_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o it_o and_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o of_o those_o thing_n that_o may_v concern_v they_o i_o may_v say_v much_o upon_o this_o theme_n but_o let_v this_o suffice_v to_o detect_v the_o weak_a foundation_n of_o j._n faldo_n faith_n knowledge_n and_o practice_n and_o that_o such_o as_o he_o though_o pretend_o 2_o or_o 3_o degree_n more_o refine_v than_o the_o present_a protestant_n be_v miserable_o apostatise_v from_o the_o first_o revolter_n from_o rome_n idolatry_n who_o assert_v none_o can_v understand_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o much_o less_o benefit_n by_o they_o who_o have_v not_o the_o same_o spirit_n that_o give_v they_o forth_o consequent_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o principal_a cause_n of_o right_a knowledge_n and_o rule_n for_o our_o very_a understanding_n of_o they_o and_o true_o though_o j._n faldo_n will_v have_v the_o world_n think_v he_o both_o understand_v the_o quaker_n principle_n very_o well_o and_o have_v refute_v they_o very_o clear_o yet_o whether_o he_o will_v give_v i_o leave_v or_o no_o i_o will_v make_v he_o speak_v the_o language_n of_o the_o quaker_n pass_v well_o in_o this_o particular_a of_o the_o spirit_n be_v the_o judge_n rule_n and_o guide_n of_o faith_n worship_n and_o conversation_n the_o thing_n aim_v at_o in_o that_o first_o part_n of_o my_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n by_o he_o so_o much_o quarrel_v at_o pervert_v and_o scurrilous_o abuse_v or_o else_o i_o great_o mistake_v his_o mind_n and_o which_o will_v be_v much_o to_o my_o defence_n he_o must_v likewise_o have_v do_v so_o himself_o hear_v he_o §_o 16._o but_o mr._n penn_n do_v you_o deal_v fair_o and_o honest_o with_o your_o adversary_n to_o imply_v in_o your_o question_n that_o we_o deny_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v a_o 15._o proper_a rule_n of_o faith_n guide_v of_o life_n judge_n of_o truth_n you_o know_v that_o we_o own_v it_o to_o be_v such_o and_o that_o it_o do_v both_o in_o the_o conscience_n and_o by_o the_o scripture_n creation_n and_o providence_n perform_v such_o act_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v to_o such_o purpose_n &_o that_o of_o right_o what_o can_v we_o say_v more_o have_v he_o not_o strange_o misunderstand_a we_o again_o only_o we_o deny_v that_o the_o spirit_n always_o perform_v these_o act_n without_o the_o use_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o any_o external_n mean_v true_o and_o so_o do_v we_o for_o we_o daily_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n both_o of_o god_n spirit_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o public_a worship_n as_o mean_n if_o this_o be_v the_o grindstone_n my_o nose_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v at_o and_o by_o not_o mention_v of_o which_o as_o he_o false_o say_v of_o i_o i_o abuse_v and_o trifle_v he_o and_o my_o unwary_a reader_n i_o be_o content_v to_o abide_v here_o while_o i_o live_v as_o my_o discourse_n at_o large_a upon_o the_o scripture_n must_v needs_o have_v inform_v those_o who_o have_v read_v it_o but_o i_o be_o of_o the_o mind_n that_o j._n faldo_n will_v find_v it_o too_o hot_a for_o he_o and_o i_o be_o assure_v that_o so_o much_o concession_n overturne_v he_o for_o ever_o as_o to_o his_o present_a basis_n for_o that_o he_o shall_v oppose_v my_o discourse_n that_o intend_v nothing_o more_o than_o to_o prove_v god_n spirit_n
least_o what_o be_v our_o quakerism_n or_o christianity_n rather_o and_o we_o leave_v our_o belief_n with_o that_o god_n who_o make_v it_o so_o to_o justify_v it_o and_o we_o who_o thus_o stead_n fast_o hold_v and_o daily_o yet_o patient_o suffer_v for_o it_o by_o his_o own_o discovery_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o men._n but_o this_o i_o will_v add_v that_o since_o he_o have_v render_v we_o to_o be_v one_o thing_n in_o show_n and_o another_o in_o reality_n our_o appeal_n be_v to_o the_o god_n that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o right_v we_o in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o §_o 11._o we_o dare_v not_o believe_v or_o practise_v what_o come_v not_o in_o by_o true_a conviction_n thing_n mere_o historical_a except_v and_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o conviction_n for_o they_o to_o the_o devil_n who_o know_v christ_n and_o tremble_v be_v more_o sensible_a than_o those_o who_o know_v he_o only_o by_o hear-say_n and_o make_v a_o mock_n of_o that_o tremble_v which_o seize_v the_o contrite_a soul_n of_o man_n for_o sin_n we_o declare_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n that_o it_o be_v the_o strive_v of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o we_o that_o first_o move_v we_o to_o solid_a repentance_n and_o as_o we_o come_v to_o be_v judge_v byit_n and_o reconcile_v unto_o god_n in_o our_o mind_n so_o have_v we_o appear_v before_o all_o man_n therefore_o it_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o we_o cover_v our_o tenet_n with_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a principle_n since_o these_o follow_v which_o be_v we_o be_v true_o christian_n and_o scriptural_a 1_o god_n create_v man_n innocent_a in_o his_o own_o image_n create_v he_o he_o 2._o that_o man_n or_o all_o mankind_n have_v fall_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n through_o disobedience_n 3._o that_o in_o the_o seed_n promise_v redemption_n can_v only_o be_v have_v 4._o that_o this_o seed_n be_v he_o that_o in_o time_n be_v call_v christ_n 5._o that_o by_o this_o holy_a seed_n both_o before_o and_o since_o that_o come_v the_o serpent_n head_n have_v be_v particular_o bruise_v in_o all_o who_o have_v be_v redeem_v or_o save_v as_o the_o holy_a man_n and_o woman_n of_o old_a and_o such_o in_o every_o age_n as_o have_v know_v a_o sanctification_n 6._o that_o this_o seed_n appear_v in_o the_o fullness_n and_o stature_n of_o a_o man_n in_o that_o outward_a body_n prepare_v of_o god_n above_o 1600._o year_n since_o and_o in_o it_o encounter_v and_o conquer_a satan_n and_o tread_v he_o under_o his_o foot_n 7._o that_o he_o bear_v the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n 8._o that_o he_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n a_o ransom_n for_o all_o 9_o that_o such_o as_o believe_v and_o follow_v he_o as_o he_o then_o appear_v receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a life_n 10._o that_o what_o be_v then_o outward_o do_v do_v still_o refer_v and_o have_v relation_n to_o a_o inward_a work_n in_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n the_o holy_a life_n put_v forth_o itself_o to_o work_v inward_a conviction_n and_o drive_v the_o mind_n into_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o same_o in_o itself_o for_o the_o whole_a end_n of_o it_o be_v to_o draw_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n more_o inward_a to_o a_o manifestation_n of_o that_o same_o life_n virtue_n power_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n in_o each_o particular_a which_o appear_v in_o that_o body_n in_o general_n and_o qualify_v it_o to_o that_o great_a work_n and_o sustain_v it_o under_o all_o its_o suffering_n and_o put_v that_o great_a value_n upon_o they_o which_o real_o be_v in_o they_o wherefore_o to_o the_o divine_a power_n first_o and_o to_o the_o holy_a manhood_n next_o do_v we_o ascribe_v that_o great_a and_o wonderful_a benefit_n that_o thereby_o come_v unto_o the_o world_n §_o 12._o but_o next_o we_o must_v deny_v his_o quaker_n as_o well_o as_o his_o quakerism_n indeed_o they_o go_v together_o who_o miss_v one_o it_o be_v unlikely_a he_o shall_v hit_v the_o other_o we_o never_o say_v that_o the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o very_o god_n let_v he_o but_o show_v we_o any_o passage_n of_o any_o one_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o quaker_n and_o he_o will_v say_v something_o but_o methinks_v he_o that_o have_v quote_v so_o many_o passage_n out_o of_o our_o friend_n book_n to_o so_o little_a purpose_n shall_v not_o have_v neglect_v to_o instance_n in_o some_o one_o of_o we_o that_o have_v so_o express_v ourselves_o it_o show_v that_o either_o he_o think_v to_o be_v believe_v hand_n over_o head_n or_o real_o there_o be_v no_o such_o doctrine_n by_o we_o assert_v and_o consequent_o he_o know_v no_o such_o place_n to_o cite_v but_o for_o the_o upright-hearted_n in_o all_o form_n who_o be_v desirous_a of_o the_o substance_n that_o will_v give_v life_n to_o the_o soul_n and_o who_o stand_v only_o at_o a_o distance_n from_o we_o on_o the_o account_n of_o the_o many_o frightful_a character_n their_o teacher_n give_v of_o we_o i_o shall_v brief_o open_v our_o faith_n in_o this_o matter_n §_o 13._o first_o we_o assert_v that_o all_o man_n be_v enlighten_v let_v it_o be_v light_v in_o their_o soul_n or_o understanding_n if_o our_o adversary_n will_v this_o be_v prove_v from_o joh._n 1._o 9_o also_o whatever_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_v within_o for_o god_n have_v show_v it_o unto_o they_o again_o whatever_o 19_o be_v reprove_v be_v make_v manifest_a by_o the_o light_n for_o whatever_o make_v manifest_a be_v light_n all_o knowledge_n of_o god_n come_v by_o the_o light_n he_o give_v into_o the_o soul_n as_o well_o as_o that_o all_o have_v that_o light_n though_o few_o obey_v it_o §_o 14._o second_o this_o light_n be_v divine_a because_o it_o be_v the_o very_a life_n of_o the_o word_n which_o be_v god_n not_o a_o effect_n of_o its_o power_n as_o a_o create_a light_n which_o some_o vain_o fancy_n but_o in_o he_o or_o it_o the_o word_n be_v life_n and_o that_o life_n numerical_a be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n what_o be_v life_n in_o the_o word_n be_v light_n in_o man_n and_o who_o follow_v that_o light_n as_o a_o reprover_n of_o the_o deed_n of_o darkness_n shall_v be_v make_v child_n of_o light_n and_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n §_o 15._o three_o though_o we_o say_v that_o all_o be_v enlighten_v by_o it_o or_o receive_v light_n from_o it_o yet_o far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o to_o assert_v every_o such_o illumination_n be_v the_o only_a lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o very_o god_n by_o no_o mean_n but_o rather_o thus_o that_o the_o only_a lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o very_a god_n be_v the_o great_a sun_n and_o light_n of_o righteousness_n to_o the_o invisible_a world_n of_o soul_n and_o spirit_n if_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v who_o manifest_v unto_o every_o particular_a that_o which_o concern_v the_o state_n of_o every_o individual_a but_o not_o that_o every_o such_o enlighten_v shall_v be_v the_o entire_a lord_n saviour_n god_n so_o that_o this_o priest_n be_v already_o find_v deficient_a in_o his_o work_n he_o shall_v better_o have_v understand_v we_o before_o he_o have_v give_v a_o account_n of_o we_o and_o discover_v his_o opposition_n to_o we_o what_o superstructure_n can_v we_o expect_v from_o so_o infirm_a a_o foundation_n how_o shall_v j._n faldo_n prove_v quakerism_n no_o christianity_n who_o be_v defective_a in_o his_o definition_n of_o both_o certain_o the_o quaker_n may_v be_v the_o best_a of_o christian_n for_o aught_o he_o have_v ground_o oppose_v to_o he_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o will_v have_v think_v such_o a_o mistake_n in_o we_o most_o heinous_a to_o say_v nothing_o of_o that_o advantage_n he_o will_v have_v take_v to_o show_v his_o little_a wit_n and_o great_a prejudice_n in_o aggravate_v our_o ignorance_n to_o the_o world_n chap._n ii_o how_o christianity_n be_v introduce_v it_o hurt_v not_o the_o quaker_n the_o question_n be_v not_o of_o christ_n visible_a come_v that_o be_v own_v by_o they_o nor_o be_v their_o religion_n a_o new_a one_o from_o that_o of_o christianity_n but_o the_o recovery_n of_o lose_a primitive_a christianity_n since_o the_o reign_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o world_n that_o quakerism_n as_o call_v make_v its_o way_n by_o purity_n sorrow_n and_o rejoice_v as_o well_o as_o christianity_n the_o priest_n vilify_a expression_n rebuke_v that_o the_o distinct_a time_n of_o their_o appearance_n be_v no_o argument_n against_o their_o harmony_n or_o be_v but_o two_o word_n for_o the_o same_o thing_n since_o the_o same_o truth_n may_v appear_v at_o two_o distinct_a age_n of_o the_o world_n it_o will_v strike_v out_o j._n faldo_n as_o well_o as_o the_o quaker_n if_o the_o contrary_a be_v admit_v that_o he_o gross_o contradict_v himself_o as_o to_o time_n christianity_n have_v more_o or_o less_o be_v in_o the_o world_n where_o godly_a man_n
will_v i_o the_o thing_n follow_v which_o i_o have_v declare_v of_o be_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o man_n nor_o by_o man_n do_v i_o receive_v they_o but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n w._n dewsberry_n thus_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o his_o belove_a city_n through_o your_o brother_n and_o companion_n in_o the_o tribulation_n and_o kingdom_n of_o patience_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n now_o what_o to_o say_v here_o in_o their_o defence_n when_o he_o lay_v nothing_o to_o their_o charge_n but_o what_o have_v be_v general_o express_v i_o know_v not_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a give_v understanding_n and_o no_o man_n can_v know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n well_o may_v we_o conclude_v then_o that_o j._n faldo_n know_v god_n no_o better_a than_o i_o do_v terra_fw-la incognita_fw-la for_o he_o deny_v all_o knowledge_n of_o he_o by_o any_o internal_a discovery_n what_o he_o know_v be_v by_o man_n and_o from_o man._n what_o offence_n or_o undervalue_v i_o will_v fain_o know_v can_v it_o be_v to_o the_o scripture_n that_o man_n shall_v know_v god_n that_o only_a way_n by_o which_o they_o testify_v god_n can_v be_v know_v of_o man_n or_o why_o shall_v he_o be_v angry_a at_o his_o author_n for_o confess_v to_o have_v know_v god_n that_o very_a way_n by_o which_o the_o scripture_n declare_v he_o only_o to_o be_v know_v but_o indeed_o it_o happen_v ill_o to_o the_o priest_n for_o all_o this_o be_v to_o prove_v too_o that_o we_o deny_v the_o scripture_n though_o hereby_o we_o fulfil_v they_o §_o 3._o for_o w._n d_n word_n they_o be_v also_o firm_a for_o god_n promise_v the_o repour_a out_o of_o his_o spirit_n and_o the_o repreach_n of_o his_o everlasting_a gospel_n and_o since_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o we_o have_v it_o but_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o invalidate_v the_o scripture_n for_o any_o under_o the_o plentiful_a pouring_n out_o of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o god_n to_o say_v this_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o say_v it_o be_v firm_a that_o so_o say_v may_v therefore_o be_v in_o the_o latter_a as_o well_o as_o former_a day_n allowable_a and_o no_o detraction_n at_o all_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o epistle_n it_o be_v what_o every_o good_a christian_a man_n can_v say_v what_o folly_n what_o impudence_n be_v it_o in_o j._n faldo_n to_o make_v that_o a_o equal_v our_o write_n to_o scripture_n or_o prefer_v they_o before_o it_o which_o both_o his_o own_o tribe_n i_o be_o able_a to_o make_v appear_v have_v frequent_o use_v though_o by_o themselves_o irreproveable_o and_o which_o indeed_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o every_o good_a christian-man_n namely_o to_o be_v a_o brother_n and_o companion_n to_o the_o child_n and_o family_n of_o god_n in_o the_o tribulation_n and_o kingdom_n of_o patience_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n well!_o if_o this_o man_n manifest_a weakness_n make_v not_o for_o our_o cause_n i_o shall_v very_o great_o strange_a §_o 4._o and_o therefore_o say_v he_o pennington_n pray_v serious_o my_o upright_a desire_n to_o the_o lord_n for_o you_o be_v that_o he_o will_v strip_v you_o of_o your_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n by_o flesh_n say_v he_o their_o sense_n be_v the_o use_n of_o our_o understanding_n though_o sanctify_v as_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o key_n etc._n etc._n but_o this_o expression_n serve_v for_o a_o notable_a key_n to_o open_v his_o ignorance_n and_o dishonesty_n his_o ignorance_n be_v evident_a in_o repute_v it_o a_o slight_a of_o the_o scripture_n to_o desire_v that_o man_n may_v be_v strip_v of_o their_o fleshly_a knowledge_n of_o they_o i_o do_v affirm_v it_o to_o be_v both_o seasonable_a and_o serious_a and_o do_v not_o j._n faldo_n stand_v upon_o a_o totter_a basis_n he_o will_v not_o so_o declaim_v against_o we_o for_o undermine_v it_o but_o let_v all_o behold_v his_o dishonesty_n to_o say_v that_o we_o desire_v to_o be_v script_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n after_o our_o sanctify_a understanding_n make_v a_o sanctify_a understanding_n and_o that_o flesh_n which_o can_v never_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n to_o wit_n the_o carnal_a dead_a dark_a unregenerate_v understanding_n to_o be_v all_o one_o o_o disingenuous_a man_n be_v thou_o fit_a to_o be_v a_o gospel_n minister_n who_o have_v not_o learn_v to_o do_v as_o thou_o will_v be_v do_v by_o i_o leave_v it_o with_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o reader_n how_o just_o or_o unjust_o thou_o have_v deal_v with_o we_o in_o this_o matter_n and_o what_o all_o or_o any_o of_o it_o concern_v the_o scripture_n for_o if_o man_n will_v not_o understand_v they_o as_o they_o be_v be_v it_o the_o fault_n of_o the_o scripture_n no_o sure_o shall_v then_o isaac_n pennington_n desire_n that_o their_o wrong_a knowledge_n of_o those_o weighty_a and_o holy_a write_n be_v interpret_v a_o disrespect_n to_o they_o and_o a_o prefer_v our_o own_o write_n before_o they_o which_o so_o hearty_o seek_v their_o right_a knowledge_n of_o they_o if_o this_o be_v the_o way_n to_o prove_v quakerism_n no_o christianity_n we_o need_v not_o much_o fear_n the_o issue_n of_o his_o attempt_n §_o 5._o but_o he_o proceed_v to_o prove_v our_o equal_v of_o the_o scripture_n two_o way_n 42._o first_o from_o our_o pretend_v to_o infallibility_n second_o our_o plea_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o inspiration_n he_o quote_v g._n whitehead'_v letter_n to_o he_o whether_o infallibility_n be_v attainable_a by_o any_o in_o these_o day_n which_o we_o affirm_v be_v to_o true_a believer_n which_o if_o thou_o deny_v we_o question_v thy_o call_n of_o inspiration_n he_o cite_v j._n story_n be_v short_a discovery_n thus_o therefore_o may_v i_o say_v much_o more_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o that_o little_a book_n either_o to_o throw_v down_o self-will_a in_o any_o in_o who_o it_o be_v not_o yet_o subdue_v or_o to_o exalt_v the_o truth_n in_o general_n because_o it_o be_v only_a query_n gather_v by_o the_o author_n from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o and_o no_o message_n of_o heavenly_a prophecy_n doctrine_n or_o exhortation_n receive_v by_o the_o author_n from_o the_o lord_n through_o the_o divine_a inspiration_n of_o his_o light_n and_o spirit_n within_o therefore_o i_o say_v it_o be_v a_o very_a vain_a and_o idolatrous_a exhortation_n to_o all_o which_o sober_a matter_n i_o have_v no_o other_o answer_n from_o he_o then_o that_o the_o quaker_n write_n be_v full_a to_o this_o purpose_n indeed_o i_o be_o glad_a of_o it_o or_o we_o have_v little_a reason_n to_o suffer_v what_o we_o do_v for_o our_o descent_n from_o the_o carnal_a professor_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o world_n but_o i_o have_v this_o to_o say_v to_o he_o he_o that_o do_v not_o infallible_o know_v what_o he_o know_v of_o god_n or_o religion_n know_v nothing_o certain_o which_o concern_v either_o now_o if_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o any_o such_o certainty_n farewell_o all_o religion_n for_o that_o a_o man_n shall_v affirm_v and_o not_o know_v whereof_o that_o he_o shall_v profess_v god_n and_o religion_n yet_o be_v uncertain_a of_o both_o but_o that_o j._n faldo_n shall_v preach_v of_o both_o and_o profess_v himself_o errable_a in_o all_o such_o doctrine_n who_o ought_v to_o believe_v he_o why_o spend_v he_o his_o breath_n at_o a_o venture_n rather_o let_v he_o eat_v drink_v for_o to_o morrow_n he_o shall_v die_v for_o death_n be_v certain_a this_o be_v your_o independent_a fallible_a errable_a uncertain_a j._n faldo_n preacher_n to_o a_o people_n at_o barnet_n and_o god_n know_v a_o lamentable_a one_o too_o what_o reason_n have_v any_o to_o believe_v he_o against_o we_o who_o be_v uncertain_a of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o he_o say_v against_o we_o by_o his_o own_o principle_n §_o 6._o for_o inspiration_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o more_o express_v in_o any_o one_o thing_n no_o man_n can_v know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n by_o the_o bare_a spirit_n of_o a_o man_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n or_o a_o man_n distinct_o consider_v from_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a can_v read_v scripture_n and_o form_n query_n and_o call_v they_o christian_n too_o yet_o who_o will_v dare_v affirm_v this_o man_n query_n to_o be_v christian_a can_v they_o beat_v down_o self-will_a they_o may_v talk_v of_o it_o or_o exalt_v the_o live_a truth_n that_o come_v not_o from_o it_o this_o be_v the_o scope_n of_o j._n story_n be_v answer_n to_o the_o questioner_n for_o what_o be_v this_o but_o steal_v the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n word_n when_o they_o be_v make_v use_v of_o
of_o the_o light_n within_o every_o such_o rebellious_a person_n in_o which_o the_o love_n of_o god_n be_v marvellous_o express_v who_o by_o his_o holy_a light_n within_o and_o its_o testimony_n without_o endeavour_v the_o conviction_n and_o reformation_n of_o the_o child_n of_o men._n §_o 13._o but_o hear_v he_o in_o his_o second_o and_o last_o inference_n upon_o the_o same_o ground_n the_o tenet_n and_o assertion_n of_o all_o the_o heathen_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o scripture_n for_o they_o result_v from_o their_o light_n within_o improve_v much_o more_o orderly_a and_o to_o purpose_v then_o the_o quaker_n do_v they_o yea_o the_o bitter_a scoff_v of_o lucian_n and_o julian_n the_o apostate_n must_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o same_o order_n for_o if_o it_o be_v admit_v they_o do_v not_o vilify_v and_o scorn_v and_o deride_v the_o scripture_n and_o christianity_n according_a to_o the_o dictate_v of_o their_o conscience_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o they_o therein_o act_v from_o the_o power_n within_o which_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o darkness_n or_o not_o the_o quaker_n have_v no_o rule_n to_o judge_v it_o by_o but_o their_o own_o sentiment_n it_o be_v leave_v by_o they_o undetermined_a and_o i_o know_v not_o hardly_o any_o worse_o they_o say_v of_o jesus_n of_o nazareth_n the_o scripture_n and_o christianity_n than_o the_o quaker_n have_v do_v under_o other_o name_n this_o passage_n impertinent_a enough_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o as_o black_a as_o hell_n itself_o in_o malice_n against_o that_o despise_a remnant_n of_o people_n call_v quaker_n by_o god_n assistance_n i_o will_v effectual_o answer_v to_o the_o shame_n of_o this_o ungodly_a slanderer_n the_o gentile_n light_n be_v one_o in_o nature_n with_o that_o which_o the_o evangelist_n say_v inlightn_v all_o man_n a_o text_n who_o plainness_n &_o expressness_n yield_v that_o advantage_n to_o we_o against_o the_o utmost_a force_n of_o all_o our_o adversary_n which_o they_o be_v angry_a at_o but_o can_v never_o invalid_n i_o say_v one_o in_o nature_n with_o that_o divine_a be_v and_o as_o such_o transcend_v all_o write_n whatever_n yet_o that_o the_o gentile_n have_v that_o light_n in_o a_o more_o excellent_a degree_n then_o that_o in_o which_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n enjoy_v it_o whence_o come_v those_o excellent_a write_n i_o utter_o deny_v and_o that_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o true_a quaker_n i_o say_v again_o that_o though_o the_o least_o measure_n of_o pure_a light_n itself_o be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o write_n in_o the_o world_n as_o mere_a write_n yet_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v comparable_a to_o that_o degree_n and_o further_a discovery_n of_o light_n which_o be_v witness_v by_o those_o who_o give_v forth_o those_o write_n i_o gr●●t_v so_o that_o to_o bring_v the_o say_n and_o the_o assertion_n of_o the_o heathen_n upon_o a_o equality_n with_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n we_o dare_v not_o assent_v to_o but_o vehement_o oppose_v any_o such_o inference_n make_v to_o be_v the_o product_n of_o our_o belief_n for_o though_o as_o i_o say_v before_o any_o measure_n of_o light_n itself_o be_v beyond_o the_o most_o excellent_a mere_a write_n of_o a_o far_o great_a yet_o the_o write_n or_o say_n give_v forth_o by_o that_o lesser_a appearance_n be_v not_o to_o be_v bring_v into_o comparison_n with_o those_o of_o a_o great_a discovery_n no_o more_o than_o the_o degree_n of_o discovery_n or_o manifestation_n of_o the_o light_n itself_o this_o the_o apostle_n paul_n practise_v who_o notwithstanding_o that_o he_o right_o know_v that_o administration_n to_o supercede_v and_o transcend_v what_o want_v before_o stick_v not_o to_o remind_v the_o heathen_n of_o their_o own_o author_n as_o aratus_n menander_n etc._n etc._n by_o a_o apt_a application_n of_o they_o to_o this_o purpose_n in_o defence_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o if_o those_o who_o become_v a_o law_n unto_o themselves_o do_v the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o law_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o circumcision_n who_o keep_v not_o the_o law_n and_o that_o who_o live_v without_o law_n outward_a yet_o according_a to_o law_n inward_a shall_v be_v judge_v by_o law_n inward_a which_o be_v substantial_o the_o same_o as_o testify_v the_o apostle_n with_o what_o be_v require_v by_o the_o law_n outward_a then_o their_o law_n within_o substantial_o consider_v do_v not_o fall_v short_a of_o that_o law_n without_o nor_o they_o who_o keep_v it_o of_o the_o circumcision_n themselves_o which_o most_o clear_o overturn_v that_o ignorant_a or_o malicious_n cavil_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o quaker_n have_v no_o mean_a by_o which_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o ground_n of_o wrong_n and_o right_a action_n for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v that_o only_a judge_n than_o there_o can_v have_v be_v no_o knowledge_n of_o right_n or_o wrong_a action_n spirit_n or_o power_n before_o they_o be_v give_v forth_o which_o because_o the_o patriarch_n and_o gentile_n have_v a_o evident_a sight_n and_o true_a sense_n of_o by_o that_o internal_a law_n of_o light_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o conscience_n without_o scripture_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o quaker_n own_v the_o same_o light_n and_o that_o in_o a_o more_o eminent_a discovery_n can_v not_o be_v guilty_a of_o such_o a_o ignorance_n §_o 14._o but_o a_o little_a further_o to_o inspect_v his_o argument_n if_o the_o have_v no_o outward_a rule_n be_v to_o be_v without_o all_o rule_n whereby_o to_o try_v a_o right_a from_o a_o wrong_a power_n i_o will_v glad_o know_v how_o the_o prophet_n themselves_o be_v assure_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o motion_n be_v without_o any_o outward_a touchstone_n and_o by_o what_o mean_v the_o apostle_n know_v that_o the_o spirit_n or_o power_n which_o act_v they_o to_o reject_v and_o decry_v the_o whole_a service_n of_o the_o jew_n which_o god_n have_v so_o peculiar_o institute_v circumcision_n for_o instance_n that_o be_v give_v for_o a_o sign_n forever_o be_v the_o right_a spirit_n or_o power_n i_o ask_v be_v it_o the_o scripture_n without_o or_o the_o son_n of_o god_n otherwise_o call_v the_o light_n or_o word_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o they_o but_o i_o will_v yet_o proceed_v suppose_v any_o man_n who_o be_v call_v a_o independent_a and_o own_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v that_o which_o j._n faldo_n repute_v they_o shall_v pretend_v a_o vision_n of_o very_o strange_a and_o unwonted_a thing_n shall_v imitate_v a_o trance_n &_o personate_v some_o extraordinary_a inspire_a person_n by_o what_o place_n of_o scripture_n will_v j._n faldo_n assure_v himself_o or_o other_o of_o the_o sincerity_n or_o imposture_n of_o such_o a_o person_n his_o rational_n be_v otherwise_o sound_v his_o life_n sober_a and_o his_o pretence_n no_o way_n anti-scriptural_a o_o weak_a man_n be_v thy_o religion_n without_o a_o secret_a light_n life_n power_n virtue_n sight_n or_o relish_n of_o the_o root_n and_o ground_n of_o thing_n or_o rather_o do_v thou_o conclude_v that_o all_o mankind_n however_o christian_n be_v leave_v destitute_a of_o any_o inward_a power_n to_o try_v or_o discern_v spirit_n because_o it_o be_v thy_o own_o state_n of_o darkness_n i_o affirm_v to_o thou_o and_o all_o the_o world_n that_o in_o this_o case_n no_o outward_a mean_a whatsoever_o decide_v the_o matter_n or_o clear_v the_o doubt_n only_o the_o invisible_a light_n power_n or_o spirit_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o that_o in_o far_o less_o case_n too_o in_o which_o sense_n chief_o it_o be_v the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o call_v and_o just_o prefer_v before_o all_o other_o and_o this_o i_o leave_v with_o he_o that_o nothing_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o root_n and_o ground_n of_o evil_a but_o the_o root_n and_o ground_n of_o good_n the_o work_v of_o evil_a the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o be_v abominable_a but_o the_o question_n be_v how_o do_v i_o know_v what_o they_o declare_v to_o be_v evil_a be_v so_o what_o work_v the_o conviction_n in_o i_o and_o where_o a_o evil_a spirit_n bring_v itself_o not_o forth_o into_o those_o work_n what_o shall_v discern_v he_o except_o it_o be_v the_o good_a spirit_n it_o be_v the_o power_n of_o god_n within_o that_o crush_v the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n within_o the_o scripture_n without_o reprove_v his_o work_n without_o but_o since_o the_o thing_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v such_o in_o themselves_o and_o true_a and_o experience_v before_o they_o be_v write_v will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o the_o inward_a power_n be_v both_o a_o sufficient_a judge_n and_o their_o author_n too_o and_o consequent_o great_a §_o 15._o but_o above_o all_o the_o impudence_n of_o his_o wickedness_n both_o to_o charge_v the_o impiety_n of_o julian_n and_o lucian_n upon_o the_o light_n within_o by_o place_v they_o in_o the_o same_o order_n with_o
of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n consequently_n not_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o light_n be_v &_o be_v most_o proper_o the_o general_a rule_n the_o middle_a proposition_n only_o to_o be_v except_v against_o be_v clear_a in_o that_o before_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o since_o where_o they_o have_v not_o be_v know_v man_n have_v be_v &_o be_v convince_v reprove_v incline_v teach_v order_v and_o rule_v by_o the_o inward_a appearance_n of_o god_n light_n in_o the_o conscience_n and_o among_o those_o who_o be_v call_v christian_n let_v they_o be_v just_a to_o god_n and_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v something_o very_o near_o they_o when_o the_o scripture_n be_v quite_o remote_a both_o from_o their_o person_n and_o their_o thought_n which_o upon_o any_o miscarriage_n be_v as_o a_o swift_a witness_n to_o smite_v and_o upon_o the_o approach_n of_o temptation_n be_v as_o quick_a to_o warn_v and_o dissuade_v the_o mind_n from_o fall_v into_o the_o foulness_n of_o it_o be_v not_o this_o then_o more_o live_v immediate_n and_o general_n that_o neither_o sea_n nor_o land_n day_n nor_o night_n nor_o any_o condition_n but_o a_o sear_v conscience_n can_v exempt_v people_n or_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o secret_a live_n and_o sensible_a touch_v of_o this_o holy_a witness_n whether_o they_o be_v to_o counsel_n justify_v or_o condemn_v this_o search_v the_o heart_n this_o try_v the_o reins_o of_o which_o david_n say_v it_o have_v make_v he_o wise_a than_o his_o teacher_n who_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o outward_a law_n unto_o he_o §_o 4._o and_o indeed_o it_o be_v unworthy_a of_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o administration_n of_o life_n itself_o more_o glorious_a than_o that_o of_o condemnation_n the_o state_n of_o the_o law_n that_o a_o outward_a book_n though_o declaratory_a of_o never_o so_o much_o good_a and_o not_o the_o good_a itself_o shall_v be_v the_o sole_a general_a rule_n of_o such_o as_o be_v under_o it_o what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o subject_v the_o spirituallity_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o thus_o much_o worse_o that_o then_o itself_o they_o have_v either_o the_o daily_a live_a voice_n of_o god_n or_o a_o law_n engrave_v on_o stone_n whilst_o the_o scripture_n which_o they_o call_v the_o present_a gospel_n rule_n be_v but_o in_o paper_n but_o can_v any_o true_a christian_a think_v that_o god_n be_v so_o want_v to_o his_o promise_n who_o promise_v to_o write_v a_o law_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n as_o to_o bound_v they_o by_o mere_a literal_a prescript_n no_o sure_o but_o much_o rather_o that_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o life_n in_o christ_n jesus_n which_o he_o promise_v to_o write_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n shall_v be_v the_o rule_n of_o this_o administration_n which_o be_v a_o live_v powerful_a rule_n present_v upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o in_o all_o straits_n and_o ready_a to_o assist_v with_o counsel_n wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n all_o who_o act_n agreeable_o to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n who_o will_v reward_v every_o man_n according_a to_o his_o work_n so_o that_o j._n parnel_n and_o w._n s._n their_o expression_n be_v clear_v for_o j._n n_n the_o last_o of_o the_o three_o it_o be_v not_o write_v in_o derision_n of_o scripture_n as_o be_v unworthy_o suggest_v but_o to_o prove_v that_o god_n be_v not_o limit_v to_o instrument_n god_n who_o holy_a spirit_n be_v the_o live_a substantial_a rule_n may_v appear_v after_o divers_a manner_n either_o by_o bring_v into_o the_o very_a conscience_n the_o truth_n of_o some_o weighty_a passage_n in_o the_o scripture_n or_o by_o a_o ministry_n or_o any_o other_o way_n yea_o by_o balaams_n ass_n to_o balaam_n and_o that_o without_o blasphemy_n or_o profaneness_n for_o by_o who_o or_o what_o may_v not_o the_o almighty_a direct_v the_o son_n of_o man_n still_o it_o be_v not_o so_o mean_v a_o creature_n as_o a_o ass_n which_o god_n speak_v by_o to_o aggravate_v the_o stupidity_n of_o balaam_n and_o greaten_v the_o miracle_n no_o nor_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o much_o less_o their_o write_n but_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v as_o a_o fire_n to_o the_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n and_o sanctification_n and_o reconciliation_n to_o they_o that_o believe_v it_o that_o be_v the_o true_a rule_n wherefore_o say_v the_o prophet_n hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n what_o word_n that_o nigh_o in_o the_o heart_n which_o moses_n and_o paul_n preach_v still_o the_o outward_a instrument_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n the_o prophet_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n the_o apostle_n be_v not_o the_o rule_n much_o less_o be_v their_o write_n be_v they_o be_v but_o all_o external_a instrument_n and_o this_o i_o will_v abide_v by_o against_o all_o the_o insult_v of_o our_o enemy_n by_o god_n assistance_n that_o both_o they_o be_v but_o such_o instrument_n and_o that_o such_o instrument_n be_v not_o the_o gospel-rule_n but_o that_o light_a life_n power_n or_o spirit_n which_o use_v they_o and_o who_o attribute_n that_o honour_n to_o the_o instrument_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o chief_a mover_n in_o it_o or_o by_o it_o commit_v downright_a idolatry_n therefore_o what_o be_v fling_v upon_o the_o quaker_n by_o their_o adversary_n be_v more_o just_o chargeable_a upon_o their_o adversary_n but_o we_o can_v help_v it_o if_o that_o people_n will_v not_o work_v through_o the_o outward_a to_o the_o inward_a the_o write_n or_o person_n to_o the_o light_n life_n and_o power_n that_o employ_v they_o for_o any_o use_n or_o service_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o shall_v we_o ever_o be_v condemn_v of_o god_n that_o we_o therefore_o decline_v to_o attribute_v those_o title_n to_o the_o scripture_n otherwise_o worthy_a above_o all_o book_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o that_o which_o give_v they_o forth_o especial_o since_o what_o we_o believe_v in_o the_o matter_n be_v with_o a_o holy_a fear_n and_o reverence_n towards_o our_o god_n and_o goodwill_n towards_o all_o men._n §_o 5._o but_o he_o object_n 1_o that_o what_o 71._o be_v therein_o affirm_v by_o the_o lord_n we_o ought_v to_o believe_v prove_v from_o christ_n word_n o_o fool_n and_o slow_a of_o heart_n to_o believe_v all_o that_o the_o prophet_n have_v speak_v luk._n 24_o 25._o 2_o that_o what_o be_v thereby_o command_v not_o be_v repeal_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o obey_v deut._n 5._o 34._o 3_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v in_o their_o kind_n determine_v or_o discover_v to_o we_o whether_o we_o believe_v and_o walk_v or_o practice_n aright_o or_o not_o prove_v hence_o all_o scripture_n be_v give_v by_o inspiration_n of_o god_n and_o be_v profitable_a for_o doctrine_n for_o reproof_n for_o correction_n for_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_a thorough_o furnish_v unto_o all_o good_a work_n and_o herein_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v i_o excercise_n myself_o to_o have_v a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n 2_o tim._n 3._o 16._o 17._o act_n 24._o 16._o to_o all_o which_o i_o say_v we_o do_v with_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o whatever_o the_o lord_n have_v by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o write_v the_o scripture_n affirm_v and_o require_v take_v in_o his_o exception_n about_o christ_n come_v it_o be_v our_o duty_n both_o to_o believe_v and_o obey_v so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o that_o matter_n for_o the_o last_o passage_n there_o be_v some_o sober_a scruple_n in_o our_o mind_n about_o it_o for_o there_o be_v manifest_a contest_v in_o the_o world_n both_o about_o faith_n and_o practice_n they_o result_n not_o from_o the_o scripture_n i_o grant_v but_o that_o they_o proceed_v from_o man_n wrong_a apprehension_n of_o scripture_n in_o a_o great_a measure_n that_o i_o affirm_v and_o i_o know_v no_o man_n so_o stupid_a as_o to_o deny_v now_o i_o will_v fain_o know_v which_o way_n those_o wrong_a apprehension_n be_v to_o be_v rectify_v he_o say_v by_o scripture_n i_o say_v not_o for_o the_o key_n be_v want_v what_o be_v that_o key_n may_v some_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n who_o give_v they_o forth_o who_o can_v explain_v any_o man_n mind_n so_o well_o as_o himself_o in_o a_o matter_n wherein_o he_o be_v not_o right_o understand_v or_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o understand_v he_o and_o if_o none_o but_o what_o be_v endue_v with_o reason_n be_v capable_a of_o understand_v a_o rational_a proposition_n neither_o can_v any_o man_n whatever_o understand_v spiritual_a proposition_n or_o proposition_n about_o spiritual_a matter_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o illumination_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o this_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o the_o sun_n be_v
not_o more_o obvious_a at_o noonday_n in_o a_o clear_a sky_n than_o this_o must_v be_v to_o all_o discern_v mind_n so_o that_o the_o scripture_n though_o profess_o own_a by_o we_o to_o be_v instrumental_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o that_o doctrine_n of_o reproof_n and_o instruction_n in_o righteousness_n weighty_o mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n paul_n for_o certain_o they_o do_v declare_v to_o we_o very_o excellent_a precept_n and_o rule_n yet_o they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o general_n and_o absolute_a rule_n that_o the_o very_a light_n or_o spirit_n of_o christ_n be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v our_o rule_n how_o far_o which_o way_n and_o to_o what_o end_v we_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o practice_v they_o and_o i_o can_v forbear_v at_o this_o time_n though_o i_o have_v often_o do_v so_o to_o show_v the_o horrible_a perversion_n of_o scripture_n this_o man_n be_v guilty_a of_o in_o the_o last_o of_o these_o two_o scripture_n by_o he_o quote_v for_o proof_n of_o the_o three_o head_n the_o apostle_n in_o his_o defence_n against_o the_o public_a orator_n of_o the_o jew_n tell_v the_o governor_n then_o present_a among_o other_o passage_n that_o though_o he_o be_v no_o disturber_n as_o accuse_v yet_o say_v he_o i_o confess_v that_o after_o the_o way_n which_o they_o call_v heresy_n do_v i_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o my_o father_n believe_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o have_v hope_n towards_o god_n which_o they_o themselves_o also_o allow_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a both_o of_o the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a §_o 6._o now_o bring_v in_o j._n faldo_n these_o word_n all_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n do_v i_o exercise_v myself_o to_o have_v a_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o men._n i_o do_v say_v this_o be_v a_o perversion_n of_o scripture_n for_o he_o have_v first_o leave_v out_o that_o which_o be_v more_o applicable_a to_o the_o word_n and_o put_v that_o only_a in_o which_o be_v least_o so_o and_o next_o he_o have_v do_v it_o in_o the_o same_o character_n by_o which_o common_a reader_n may_v be_v mistaken_o strengthen_v against_o we_o this_o be_v plain_a and_o for_o the_o former_a i_o affirm_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o proper_a in_o the_o apostle_n to_o say_v he_o be_v exercise_v in_o his_o belief_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o in_o that_o way_n of_o worship_n they_o call_v heresy_n and_o his_o hope_n of_o a_o resurrection_n both_o leave_v out_o by_o our_o adversary_n nor_o be_v such_o a_o use_n of_o his_o word_n suitable_a to_o the_o condition_n paul_n be_v in_o for_o he_o have_v outstrip_v both_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o a_o bright_a day_n and_o more_o excellent_a dispensation_n he_o can_v be_v so_o right_o say_v to_o have_v be_v exercise_v in_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v behind_o he_o as_o in_o the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o day_n which_o fulfil_v and_o swallow_v up_o the_o other_o dispensation_n as_o but_o forerunner_n of_o it_o which_o be_v that_o spiritual_a worship_n christ_n set_v up_o and_o he_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n in_o and_o endeavour_v to_o gather_v other_o to_o though_o they_o repute_v it_o heresy_n and_o that_o hope_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o both_o just_a and_o unjust_a which_o they_o themselves_o pretend_v to_o own_o what_o then_o can_v be_v paul_n mean_v in_o that_o confession_n to_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n i_o answer_v what_o be_v we_o to_o the_o world_n before_o who_o we_o stand_v charge_v by_o the_o professor_n tertullus_n j._n faldo_n at_o this_o day_n namely_o that_o though_o he_o preach_v a_o further_a glory_n and_o they_o therefore_o accuse_v he_o of_o undervalue_v the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n become_v a_o heretic_n seducer_n and_o what_o not_o as_o this_o man_n do_v we_o he_o then_o as_o we_o now_o make_v his_o defence_n confess_v to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n yet_o testify_v to_o a_o more_o spiritual_a worship_n but_o unto_o which_o they_o prophetical_o tend_v whence_o we_o observe_v 1_o the_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o spirituallity_n of_o that_o evangelical_n dispensation_n where_o the_o great_a professor_n of_o a_o literal_a religion_n the_o only_a seem_a admirer_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o earnest_a contender_n for_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n once_o deliver_v to_o the_o father_n at_o least_o as_o they_o pretend_v 2_o that_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o account_v such_o as_o be_v eminent_a promotor_n of_o the_o gospel_n contemner_n at_o least_o slighter_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n what_o need_v i_o say_v any_o more_o behold_v a_o parallel_n as_o plain_a as_o light_v itself_o the_o literal_a jew_n then_o the_o literal_a christian_n now_o the_o spiritual_a jew_n then_o the_o spiritual_a christian_n now_o §_o 7._o but_o one_o passage_n more_o the_o holy_a scripture_n determine_v according_a to_o their_o kind_n or_o 71._o as_o much_o as_o a_o write_n can_v do_v whether_o we_o believe_v or_o practice_v aright_o or_o not_o for_o say_v he_o those_o who_o come_v under_o the_o executative_a determination_n of_o law_n do_v find_v that_o process_n in_o write_v do_v not_o loose_v its_o force_n for_o the_o decree_n and_o sentence_n be_v put_v into_o that_o form_n to_o his_o assertion_n and_o the_o instance_n he_o bring_v to_o prove_v it_o i_o will_v return_v this_o answer_n to_o say_v the_o scripture_n determine_v as_o far_o as_o a_o write_n can_n do_v our_o adversary_n business_n i_o mean_v for_o we_o since_o it_o manifest_o imply_v that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o determinative_a of_o all_o case_n as_o some_o thing_n else_o may_v be_v which_o be_v a_o more_o live_v immediate_n and_o infallible_a judge_n then_o a_o write_n be_v or_o can_v be_v and_o we_o will_v grant_v that_o the_o scripture_n do_v determine_v as_o much_o as_o any_o write_n in_o the_o world_n can_v do_v unless_o god_n will_v please_v immediate_o and_o more_o full_a to_o reveal_v something_o less_o clear_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o then_o shall_v require_v that_o revelation_n to_o be_v write_v for_o man_n must_v have_v a_o care_n of_o limit_v either_o his_o power_n or_o will._n if_o j._n faldo_n have_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o quaker_n belief_n in_o the_o scripture_n well_o consider_v this_o i_o be_o of_o opinion_n that_o either_o he_o will_v have_v never_o give_v himself_o and_o we_o the_o trouble_n of_o so_o much_o needless_a discourse_n or_o have_v be_v so_o careful_a of_o his_o cause_n as_o never_o to_o have_v wound_v it_o with_o this_o fatal_a blow_n that_o the_o scripture_n can_v determine_v as_o far_o as_o a_o write_n will_v go_v nothing_o to_o the_o question_n at_o all_o which_o lie_v here_o whether_o any_o the_o best_a write_v or_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o give_v it_o forth_o be_v judge_n and_o as_o far_o from_o his_o purpose_n as_o quite_o lose_v of_o his_o cause_n amount_v to_o again_o §_o 8._o his_o instance_n about_o the_o law_n be_v lame_a for_o the_o good_a law_n of_o any_o land_n be_v but_o reason_n write_v or_o rather_o declare_v by_o writing_n which_o be_v obliege_v against_o the_o corruption_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o not_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o judge_n neither_o be_v the_o law_n the_o judge_n but_o there_o be_v a_o judge_n who_o interpret_v and_o speak_v from_o the_o fresh_a discovery_n of_o his_o own_o reason_n the_o mean_v and_o intendment_n of_o those_o write_a law_n if_o the_o law_n be_v sufficient_a without_o a_o judge_n why_o be_v there_o a_o judge_n if_o then_o they_o be_v dark_a obscure_a and_o doubtful_a in_o many_o case_n so_o as_o to_o need_v a_o judge_n and_o interpreter_n which_o i_o call_v living_n and_o immediate_a reason_n then_o since_o the_o scripture_n be_v write_n in_o which_o be_v many_o thing_n very_o difficult_a to_o be_v understand_v it_o follow_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o immediate_a live_a judge_n which_o must_v be_v therefore_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n that_o give_v they_o forth_o because_o none_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n save_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o that_o those_o who_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o law_n be_v the_o only_a person_n who_o be_v fit_a to_o judge_v and_o determine_v in_o case_n of_o difficulty_n by_o a_o declaration_n of_o their_o mind_n or_o intention_n in_o any_o such_o obscure_a passage_n so_o that_o if_o j._n faldo_n shall_v write_v a_o thousand_o year_n against_o the_o quaker_n he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o weather_v this_o one_o passage_n in_o which_o he_o have_v most_o evident_o subject_v the_o scripture_n to_o a_o more_o live_v spiritual_n and_o immediate_a judge_n than_o any_o mere_a write_n
possible_o can_v be_v which_o he_o make_v they_o but_o to_o be_v §_o 9_o in_o short_a either_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o obscure_a a_o thing_n we_o daily_o see_v or_o if_o so_o yet_o sufficient_a which_o be_v impossible_a or_o they_o must_v have_v a_o judge_n which_o be_v most_o true_a and_o necessary_a and_o what_o judge_n but_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n which_o lead_v into_o all_o truth_n and_o so_o far_o be_v decree_n from_o determine_v because_o write_v that_o they_o be_v therefore_o determinative_a of_o controversy_n because_o of_o that_o conviction_n the_o power_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v work_v upon_o the_o conscience_n so_o that_o though_o what_o be_v true_a in_o itself_o be_v not_o the_o less_o so_o because_o write_v yet_o be_v not_o the_o write_n subject_a to_o a_o hundred_o casualty_n nor_o matter_n therein_o declare_v as_o there_o eminent_o the_o rule_n much_o less_o the_o judge_n after_o our_o adversary_n notion_n of_o a_o judge_n but_o that_o live_v powerful_a spirit_n which_o give_v it_o forth_o and_o who_o be_v make_v spiritual_a man_n by_o it_o for_o the_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v all_o thing_n such_o write_n may_v be_v declaratory_a of_o the_o mind_n and_o determination_n of_o the_o live_a rule_n or_o judge_n i_o grant_v but_o also_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o write_n themselves_o be_v that_o rule_n how_o people_n be_v to_o believe_v they_o and_o a_o judge_n how_o to_o determine_v of_o the_o difficulty_n and_o obscurity_n within_o themselves_o a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n and_o a_o thing_n altogether_o absurd_a we_o can_v end_v this_o chapter_n without_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n in_o open_v thing_n so_o clear_o to_o the_o make_v know_v his_o divine_a light_n and_o truth_n and_o manifest_o discover_v the_o great_a darkness_n and_o blindness_n of_o its_o opposer_n chap._n vi_o we_o deny_v the_o charge_n his_o proof_n no_o proof_n but_o against_o himself_o we_o own_o believe_v and_o desire_v to_o obey_v the_o scripture_n they_o afford_v comfort_n and_o be_v as_o light_n in_o the_o world_n but_o not_o that_o true_a light_n the_o light_n and_o spirit_n superior_a to_o they_o §_o 1._o the_o next_o charge_n he_o bring_v against_o we_o be_v a_o consequence_n of_o his_o already_o mistake_a judgement_n and_o untrue_a assertion_n concern_v we_o viz._n that_o we_o take_v people_n off_o from_o read_v the_o scripture_n 78._o and_o look_v into_o they_o for_o instruction_n and_o comfort_n to_o prove_v which_o as_o he_o think_v for_o none_o else_o can_v that_o be_v not_o either_o as_o deep_o ignorant_a of_o we_o or_o as_o malicious_a against_o we_o as_o j._n faldo_n show_v himself_o in_o almost_o every_o particular_a he_o bring_v out_o w._n smith_n speak_v thus_o in_o his_o catech._n pag._n 95._o and_o this_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o our_o doctrine_n to_o bring_v people_n to_o the_o everlasting_a word_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o o_o ungodly_a man_n what_o evil_a spirit_n have_v possess_v j._n faldo_n into_o this_o wretched_a and_o impious_a consequence_n certain_o he_o be_v gross_o blind_a or_o he_o have_v sin_v against_o the_o light_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n if_o he_o have_v conscience_n enough_o to_o think_v it_o a_o sin_n which_o i_o profess_v i_o doubt_v when_o the_o malignity_n frothiness_n envy_n and_o impious_a unjustice_n of_o the_o man_n be_v set_v before_o i_o for_o 1_o let_v any_o tell_v i_o if_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n to_o bring_v people_n to_o the_o everlasting_a word_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o though_o he_o dirt_v we_o not_o a_o little_a for_o so_o do_v 2_o if_o we_o do_v hereby_o take_v man_n off_o from_o read_v and_o look_v into_o the_o scripture_n i_o do_v affirm_v against_o this_o ungodly_a priest_n and_o that_o by_o authority_n from_o god_n the_o scripture_n reason_n and_o the_o first_o ibid._n reformer_n too_o that_o no_o man_n on_o earth_n can_v understand_v they_o but_o by_o be_v first_o bring_v to_o the_o everlasting_a word_n of_o god_n nigh_o in_o the_o heart_n by_o which_o the_o lord_n speak_v forth_o his_o will_n to_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o direct_v to_o this_o and_o never_o say_v that_o of_o themselves_o some_o over_n priest_n assert_v concern_v they_o who_o whole_a end_n be_v this_o that_o by_o exalt_v the_o letter_n and_o exclude_v the_o spirit_n they_o may_v lock_v up_o all_o knowledge_n in_o their_o own_o areanum_fw-la and_o plead_v the_o impossibility_n of_o know_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o their_o literal_a ministration_n for_o shall_v man_n be_v but_o turn_v to_o the_o certain_a witness_n of_o god_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n there_o place_v of_o the_o lord_n their_o whole_a trade_n power_n and_o reputation_n will_v fall_v and_o their_o deceit_n be_v make_v manifest_a in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n which_o god_n the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n be_v now_o accomplish_v §_o 2._o but_o he_o say_v that_o j._n parnel_n censure_v such_o that_o draw_v people_n mind_n from_o the_o light_n 79._o within_o to_o the_o light_n without_o put_v the_o letter_n for_o the_o light_n etc._n etc._n shield_n of_o tr._n pag._n 10._o and_o what_o then_o because_o we_o say_v that_o he_o who_o enlighten_v all_o man_n god_n that_o be_v the_o sun_n and_o fountain_n of_o all_o divine_a light_n and_o in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o be_v great_a than_o the_o scripture_n therefore_o will_v it_o follow_v that_o we_o take_v people_n off_o from_o read_v or_o look_v into_o they_o behold_v your_o priest_n you_o that_o hear_v he_o be_v this_o man_n to_o be_v account_v of_o as_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o thus_o unrighteous_o deal_v with_o we_o but_o god_n will_v recompense_v upon_o his_o head_n in_o the_o day_n of_o his_o terrible_a vengeance_n for_o all_o his_o hard_a and_o ungodly_a say_n against_o we_o we_o do_v say_v and_o that_o right_o whoever_o put_v the_o letter_n in_o opposition_n to_o or_o above_o the_o spirit_n be_v a_o idolater_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o comparison_n right_o make_v between_o they_o the_o heaven_n do_v excel_v the_o earth_n more_o than_o the_o spirit_n do_v the_o letter_n and_o the_o power_n the_o form_n but_o if_o we_o do_v not_o therefore_o deny_v the_o form_n of_o godliness_n because_o we_o prefer_v and_o press_v more_o earnest_o the_o power_n neither_o do_v we_o exclude_v the_o scripture_n because_o we_o prefer_v and_o press_v the_o everlasting_a word_n of_o god_n nigh_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o this_o i_o will_v tell_v he_o that_o to_o busy_a the_o mind_n of_o man_n with_o the_o depth_n of_o those_o truth_n the_o scripture_n declare_v of_o by_o read_v and_o exercise_v their_o mind_n in_o meditate_v thereon_o before_o they_o have_v be_v turn_v unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o light_n or_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v that_o in_o its_o secret_a discovery_n reproof_n and_o strive_n be_v to_o set_v man_n about_o image_n to_o conceive_v a_o god_n a_o christ_n a_o salvation_n a_o damnation_n a_o heaven_n a_o hell_n by_o which_o the_o inward_a work_n of_o god_n be_v overlook_v and_o they_o become_v rich_a in_o notion_n whilst_o most_o barren_a in_o obedience_n and_o of_o all_o people_n that_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n the_o great_a idolater_n because_o they_o bow_v down_o to_o their_o own_o imagination_n for_o real_a truth_n and_o this_o be_v the_o state_n of_o every_o opposer_n to_o the_o sacred_a light_n within_o how_o full_a soever_o of_o the_o mere_a literal_a knowledge_n of_o the_o very_a scripture_n themselves_o for_o indeed_o who_o know_v the_o new_a birth_n though_o the_o scripture_n declare_v of_o it_o but_o who_o real_o experience_v it_o §_o 3._o but_o j._n story_n he_o think_v have_v contribute_v much_o to_o prove_v his_o assertion_n in_o this_o 80._o passage_n and_o although_o the_o holy_a scripture_n without_o and_o the_o saint_n practice_n be_v as_o light_n in_o the_o world_n yet_o far_o be_v it_o from_o all_o true_a christian_a man_n so_o to_o idolise_v they_o as_o to_o set_v they_o in_o esteem_n above_o the_o light_n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o guide_v or_o to_o esteem_v they_o equal_a with_o the_o light_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n within_o j._n s._n short_a discourse_n pag._n 2._o to_o this_o he_o object_n that_o j._n s._n confess_v they_o to_o be_v as_o light_v but_o not_o a_o light_n and_o that_o our_o commendation_n of_o that_o idol_n the_o light_n within_o be_v such_o that_o if_o they_o be_v true_a he_o be_v a_o stark_a fool_n that_o will_v direct_v his_o eye_n to_o the_o scripture_n but_o here_o the_o priest_n fail_n egregious_o for_o if_o the_o scripture_n be_v as_o light_n i_o can_v see_v how_o they_o shall_v be_v deny_v to_o be_v as_o in_o the_o
spin_v out_o the_o hourglass_n i_o mean_v say_v over_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o other_o word_n yet_o that_o we_o may_v remove_v all_o ground_n of_o scruple_n i_o will_v lay_v down_o the_o several_a charge_n of_o the_o remain_a chapter_n concern_v the_o scripture_n and_o the_o best_a proof_n he_o bring_v for_o they_o and_o brief_o examine_v both_o §_o 2._o the_o quaker_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n command_n promise_n holy_a example_n express_v 87._o in_o the_o scripture_n as_o such_o not_o at_o all_o to_o be_v bind_v to_o we_o this_o say_v he_o be_v a_o deny_v of_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o god_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o bring_v out_o e._n burrough_n speak_v thus_o that_o be_v no_o command_n of_o god_n to_o i_o what_o he_o command_v to_o another_o neither_o do_v any_o of_o the_o saint_n which_o we_o read_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n act_n by_o that_o command_n which_o be_v to_o another_o not_o have_v the_o command_n to_o themselves_o i_o challenge_v to_o find_v a_o example_n to_o it_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v brief_o and_o plain_o edward_n burroughs_n expression_n may_v be_v take_v two_o way_n and_o both_o safe_a enough_o to_o the_o honour_n and_o credit_n of_o the_o scripture_n though_o not_o to_o the_o charity_n or_o honesty_n of_o j._n faldo_n no_o command_n in_o the_o scripture_n be_v any_o further_o obliege_v upon_o any_o man_n then_o as_o he_o find_v a_o conviction_n upon_o his_o conscience_n otherwise_o man_n shall_v be_v engage_v without_o if_o not_o against_o conviction_n a_o thing_n unreasonable_a in_o a_o man._n therefore_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o church_n exhort_v they_o not_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v ashamed_a to_o shun_v what_o be_v manifest_v to_o be_v evil_a and_o affirm_v that_o whatever_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_v within_o for_o god_n have_v show_v it_o unto_o they_o so_o that_o conviction_n can_v only_o oblige_v to_o obedience_n and_o since_o what_o work_v that_o conviction_n be_v the_o manifest_v light_n universal_a grace_n or_o quicken_a spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o mankind_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o principal_a ground_n for_o our_o faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n and_o reason_n of_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o holy_a precept_n therein_o contain_v be_v the_o manifestation_n conviction_n and_o secret_a drawing_n of_o the_o light_n or_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o conscience_n and_o thus_o e._n b_n word_n be_v sound_a and_o scriptural_a for_o the_o scripture_n be_v chief_o believe_v to_o be_v true_a upon_o conviction_n therefore_o every_o practice_n therein_o and_o when_o any_o man_n be_v convince_v that_o what_o be_v command_v another_o be_v require_v of_o he_o then_o and_o not_o till_o then_o he_o be_v right_o authorise_a to_o perform_v it_o again_o §_o 3._o such_o command_n be_v either_o relate_n to_o ordinary_a or_o extraordinary_a case_n by_o ordinary_a case_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o chief_o concern_v faith_n and_o holy_a life_n which_o be_v general_n permanent_a and_o indispensible_a and_o then_o i_o deny_v his_o consequence_n by_o extraordinary_a case_n i_o understand_v moses_n '_o s_z go_v to_o pharaoh_n the_o prophet_n several_a manner_n of_o appearance_n to_o the_o king_n priest_n and_o people_n of_o israel_n with_o other_o temporary_a command_n relate_v to_o outward_a service_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o we_o do_v say_v that_o what_o be_v command_v one_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v as_o such_o upon_o another_o but_o when_o the_o lord_n shall_v say_v if_o thou_o sin_v thou_o shall_v die_v if_o thou_o keep_v my_o command_n thou_o shall_v live_v be_v you_o holy_a for_o i_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n be_o holy_a also_o in_o case_n of_o example_n as_o the_o priest_n cite_v who_o faith_n follow_v consider_v the_o end_n of_o their_o conversation_n leave_v we_o a_o example_n that_o we_o shall_v follow_v his_o step_n for_o 3._o yourselves_o know_v you_o not_o how_o you_o ought_v to_o follow_v we_o for_o after_o this_o manner_n in_o the_o old_a time_n the_o holy_a woman_n also_o who_o trust_v in_o god_n adorn_v themselves_o i_o say_v these_o 5._o precept_n and_o example_n be_v obliege_v upon_o all_o why_o because_o they_o more_o or_o less_o meet_a with_o a_o conviction_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o for_o i_o be_o persuade_v none_o that_o have_v a_o reasonable_a soul_n who_o have_v not_o outlive_v their_o day_n and_o on_o who_o the_o night_n be_v not_o come_v among_o the_o indian_n themselves_o but_o will_v ready_o say_v these_o be_v true_a and_o weighty_a say_n for_o faith_n in_o god_n and_o a_o holy_a self-denying_a life_n be_v necessary_a both_o to_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a happiness_n thus_o then_o be_v we_o clear_v from_o his_o ungodly_a consequence_n indeed_o aspersion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o quaker_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n command_n promise_n holy_a example_n express_v in_o scripture_n as_o such_o not_o to_o be_v bind_v but_o let_v we_o hear_v another_o of_o his_o consequence_n by_o way_n of_o charge_n and_o see_v if_o he_o will_v acquit_v himself_o better_a than_o before_o §_o 4._o the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o may_v come_v to_o know_v god_n christ_n and_o ourselves_o to_o prove_v 97._o this_o he_o quote_v w._n smith_n primer_z p._n 2._o q._n be_v there_o not_o another_o way_n by_o which_o we_o may_v come_v to_o know_v god_n answ_n nay_o child_n there_o be_v not_o another_o way_n for_o christ_n be_v the_o way_n to_o which_o he_o reply_v christ_n say_v i_o be_o the_o way_n no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o i_o but_o he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n for_o some_o knowledge_n of_o god_n may_v be_v attain_v not_o only_o without_o christ_n as_o the_o mean_n but_o without_o the_o scripture_n also_o quote_v that_o passage_n in_o the_o first_o of_o the_o roman_n for_o the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o he_o be_v clear_o see_v be_v understand_v by_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v etc._n etc._n to_o all_o which_o i_o say_v 1._o that_o great_a untruth_n irreverence_n and_o impertinency_n can_v not_o well_o have_v be_v express_v then_o in_o his_o say_n that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o father_n but_o by_o christ_n and_o no_o man_n can_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o by_o christ_n be_v two_o different_a thing_n for_o it_o manifest_o imply_v that_o man_n may_v know_v god_n without_o christ_n either_o inward_o or_o outward_o though_o no_o other_o name_n be_v give_v and_o that_o to_o know_v the_o father_n be_v to_o know_v some_o other_o kind_n of_o be_v then_o to_o know_v god_n or_o that_o when_o they_o do_v know_v the_o one_o they_o do_v not_o know_v the_o other_o 2._o that_o it_o be_v never_o deny_v by_o any_o quaker_n that_o god_n may_v and_o sometime_o do_v reach_n into_o the_o very_a heart_n and_o conscience_n by_o the_o scripture_n shall_v i_o allow_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v convince_v of_o his_o evil_n by_o read_v one_o of_o our_o book_n and_o shall_v i_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v as_o possible_a for_o any_o to_o be_v convince_v by_o read_v some_o passage_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n god_n forbid_v neither_o do_v william_n smith_n ever_o mean_a that_o christ_n be_v so_o the_o only_a way_n to_o the_o father_n as_o thereby_o to_o exclude_v all_o instrument_n for_o than_o he_o have_v both_o cut_v off_o all_o benefit_n that_o can_v accrue_v to_o people_n by_o his_o book_n and_o also_o from_o that_o ministry_n god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o profit_v other_o with_o which_o be_v far_o from_o his_o thought_n we_o may_v be_v sure_a so_o that_o the_o great_a wickedness_n of_o this_o priest_n be_v herein_o manifest_a without_o further_a cost_n to_o know_v he_o for_o he_o argue_v from_o our_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o other_o way_n to_o the_o father_n but_o christ_n to_o our_o exclude_v the_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o our_o own_o book_n and_o ministry_n with_o they_o from_o be_v any_o way_n instrumental_a of_o good_n reader_n what_o can_v be_v say_v to_o such_o a_o man_n but_o that_o he_o be_v either_o ignorance_n or_o malice_n itself_o i_o wish_v it_o be_v the_o former_a but_o his_o book_n make_v i_o fear_v the_o latter_a §_o 5._o in_o short_a through_o all_o instrument_n he_o who_o in_o time_n and_o with_o respect_n to_o that_o manifestation_n be_v call_v christ_n be_v be_v and_o ever_o will_v be_v the_o alone_a way_n to_o the_o father_n and_o though_o he_o may_v discover_v himself_o by_o divers_a instrument_n yet_o it_o be_v but_o in_o order_n to_o incline_v man_n to_o his_o holy_a voice_n in_o man_n some_o they_o hear_v and_o obey_v and_o live_v other_o
will_v allow_v some_o grain_n for_o ill-printing_a to_o we_o especial_o who_o have_v not_o the_o press_n open_a nor_o those_o advantage_n for_o well-printing_a which_o our_o adversary_n enjoy_v that_o day_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v to_o we_o j._n faldo_n title_n be_v imprimatur_fw-la enough_o we_o swim_v against_o the_o stream_n such_o as_o be_v with_o it_o but_o god_n can_v and_o will_v turn_v the_o river_n of_o water_n and_o make_v the_o sea_n dry_v land_n vincit_fw-la qui_fw-la patitur_fw-la §_o 10._o but_o once_o more_o hear_v he_o what_o be_v to_o my_o present_a purpose_n be_v in_o the_o last_o part_n of_o his_o say_n all_o must_v be_v as_o unlearned_a from_o their_o traditional_a read_v knowledge_n as_o he_o be_v unman_v etc._n etc._n where_o he_o fall_v out_o of_o all_o bound_n upon_o we_o and_o draw_v this_o consequence_n and_o ask_v these_o question_n sure_o the_o scripture-knowledge_n be_v read-knowledge_n or_o 113._o knowledge_n that_o come_v by_o read_v as_o one_o mean_v be_v a_o most_o hateful_a thing_n to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v impart_v none_o of_o his_o secret_n to_o those_o that_o will_v understand_v any_o thing_n by_o his_o write_a word_n how_o come_v god_n to_o fall_v out_o with_o his_o own_o offspring_n do_v he_o write_v and_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v write_v and_o yet_o never_o intend_v we_o shall_v read_v it_o or_o read_v it_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v a_o word_n of_o it_o shall_v they_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n who_o live_v under_o it_o and_o yet_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n thereby_o be_v a_o sin_n and_o hindrance_n to_o their_o salvation_n to_o what_o a_o height_n of_o wickedness_n and_o folly_n do_v they_o quick_o go_v who_o be_v poison_v with_o that_o abomination_n of_o hold_v the_o light_n in_o every_o man_n conscience_n to_o be_v god_n father_n son_n spirit_z christ_n scripture_n all_o w._n p._n what_o mean_v your_o latin_a greek_a author_n logic_n scripture-quotation_n do_v you_o learn_v all_o those_o thing_n by_o immediate_a inspiration_n but_o i_o smell_v your_o design_n you_o will_v have_v we_o throw_v away_o all_o the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v by_o read_v or_o tradition_n till_o we_o come_v to_o be_v regenerate_v that_o be_v quaker_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o will_v have_v we_o without_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n for_o whatsoever_o make_v manifest_a be_v light_n that_o we_o may_v not_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v ourselves_o against_o the_o most_o ignorant_a nonsense_n that_o the_o mean_a of_o your_o votary_n can_v attempt_v we_o with_o but_o the_o god_n above_o and_o the_o scripture_n without_o have_v teach_v we_o better_a thing_n i_o be_o not_o unwilling_a to_o quote_v a_o few_o scripture_n put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n rom._n 13._o 12._o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v quick_a and_o powerful_a sharp_a than_o any_o two-edged_a sword_n hebr._n 4._o 12._o above_o all_o take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o you_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o 17._o quench_v etc._n etc._n and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n observe_v faith_n in_o the_o 16_o verse_n be_v prefer_v above_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 17_o verse_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o christ_n the_o word_n but_o the_o scripture_n the_o word_n for_o faith_n be_v not_o above_o christ_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v less_o need_n of_o scripture_n than_o any_o of_o we_o all_o resist_v satan_n temptation_n by_o scripture_n it_o be_v write_v it_o be_v write_v mat._n 4._o i_o have_v reader_n give_v his_o mind_n at_o large_a and_o the_o rather_o that_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o it_o with_o the_o charge_n he_o begin_v his_o chapter_n upon_o and_o the_o contradiction_n of_o it_o to_o himself_o may_v more_o evident_o appear_v my_o mean_v be_v too_o foul_o conceal_v and_o disingenuous_o evade_v by_o the_o man._n how_o can_v he_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v speak_v so_o reverent_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o quote_v they_o diligent_o and_o very_o often_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o my_o assertion_n and_o yet_o mean_v nothing_o less_o abusive_a of_o they_o than_o his_o untrue_a consequence_n i_o intend_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o man_n in_o a_o state_n of_o degeneracy_n from_o god_n may_v have_v a_o profession_n of_o god_n and_o religion_n take_v up_o from_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n and_o outward_a practice_n of_o the_o saint_n not_o be_v so_o much_o as_o sensible_a of_o the_o remorse_n conviction_n and_o judgement_n god_n bring_v upon_o every_o soul_n for_o sin_n which_o be_v the_o beginning_n of_o his_o work_n of_o redemption_n and_o that_o many_o be_v rich_a in_o notion_n and_o a_o show_n of_o religion_n who_o never_o begin_v right_a but_o must_v know_v a_o be_v strip_v of_o all_o their_o knowledge_n and_o those_o wrong_o apply_v promise_v they_o have_v take_v as_o to_o themselves_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o those_o imagination_n they_o have_v raise_v thence_o towards_o a_o fabric_n of_o religion_n and_o so_o become_v poor_a and_o naked_a and_o hungry_a and_o thirsty_a as_o a_o little_a child_n or_o new_a bottle_n fit_v for_o the_o new_a wine_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o which_o the_o scripture_n testify_v many_o can_v talk_v of_o christ_n from_o the_o scripture_n which_o crucify_v he_o in_o themselves_o by_o wicked_a work_n and_o do_v render_v praise_n to_o he_o as_o the_o seed_n that_o have_v bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n while_o the_o serpent_n may_v be_v yet_o reign_v in_o they_o all_o such_o knowledge_n and_o profession_n of_o religion_n from_o the_o mere_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n distinct_a from_o the_o revelation_n and_o operation_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n within_o must_v be_v unlearn_v unravil_v unbottomed_a one_o stone_n must_v not_o be_v leave_v stand_v upon_o one_o another_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o beginning_n upon_o a_o right_a foundation_n but_o far_o be_v it_o from_o i_o to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n must_v unlearn_v that_o knowledge_n he_o have_v have_v of_o the_o scripture_n from_o the_o key_n of_o david_n the_o live_a word_n of_o god_n when_o it_o have_v open_v the_o mystery_n therein_o declare_v of_o by_o no_o mean_n for_o such_o knowledge_n be_v right_o natural_a sanctify_v from_o god_n and_o to_o be_v esteem_v very_o excellent_a and_o divine_a §_o 11._o my_o latin_a greek_a author_n logic_n scripture-quotation_n i_o therefore_o use_v and_o urge_v with_o plainness_n and_o brevity_n to_o prove_v and_o recommend_v the_o truth_n i_o defend_v to_o the_o world_n that_o lie_v under_o great_a discredit_v with_o too_o many_o they_o may_v see_v that_o ready_a to_o its_o confirmation_n which_o they_o perhaps_o will_v not_o otherwise_o have_v think_v upon_o but_o the_o priest_n have_v be_v as_o uncandid_a with_o i_o here_o as_o with_o my_o friend_n and_o self_n abundant_o elsewhere_o for_o he_o infer_v general_a affirmative_n or_o negative_n from_o particular_a proposition_n because_o i_o affirm_v that_o unregenerate_a man_n must_v begin_v again_o that_o their_o religion_n must_v be_v unlearned_a as_o to_o their_o way_n of_o acquire_v it_o the_o priest_n conclude_v the_o quaker_n deny_v all_o knowledge_n which_o come_v from_o read_v meditation_n or_o any_o such_o mean_n however_o sanctify_v then_o which_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o of_o that_o kind_n more_o untrue_a since_o it_o be_v to_o say_v because_o we_o deny_v a_o erroneous_a understanding_n therefore_o we_o deny_v all_o understanding_n or_o in_o as_o much_o as_o we_o comdemn_v all_o ill-acquired_n or_o wrong-gotten_a knowledge_n for_o that_o cause_n we_o be_v to_o be_v conclude_v enemy_n to_o all_o true_a and_o well_o get_v knowledge_n but_o we_o must_v bear_v this_o and_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o and_o the_o rather_o since_o he_o do_v so_o seasonable_o assist_v to_o his_o own_o confutation_n by_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o scripture_n without_o and_o god_n above_o have_v teach_v he_o better_a thing_n now_o what_o be_v this_o teach_v of_o the_o god_n above_o if_o it_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n it_o be_v impertinent_a to_o say_v any_o more_o than_o that_o the_o scripture_n have_v teach_v they_o better_a thing_n but_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o god_n teach_v by_o his_o immediate_a discovery_n with_o and_o beside_o the_o seripture_n then_o wherein_o do_v we_o differ_v why_o have_v he_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n and_o fling_v so_o much_o dirt_n he_o bid_v we_o also_o to_o put_v on_o the_o armour_n of_o light_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o of_o the_o scripture_n he_o err_v egregioussy_a for_o no_o man_n can_v put_v they_o on_o neither_o be_v they_o that_o light_n which_o manifest_v every_o thought_n word_n or_o deed_n but_o that_o light_a which_o we_o assert_v to_o have_v be_v before_o the_o scripture_n be_v and_o now_o be_v where_o they_o be_v not_o or_o at_o least_o when_o they_o be_v not_o think_v upon_o which_o
flesh_n and_o blood_n the_o birth_n that_o persecute_v the_o son_n and_o heir_n grave_v image_n morn_n watch_n p._n 22_o 23._o it_o will_v amaze_v say_v he_o a_o christian_n to_o read_v what_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o two_o page_n quote_v of_o vilify_a reproach_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o doctrine_n from_o they_o receive_v if_o this_o be_v not_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o the_o scripture_n and_o render_v they_o advers._fw-la to_o each_o other_o the_o devil_n himself_o must_v despair_v of_o invent_v word_n to_o express_v it_o by_o and_o now_o reader_n it_o be_v time_n for_o i_o with_o a_o soul_n full_a of_o grief_n to_o make_v my_o appeal_n to_o the_o righteous_a lord_n god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o his_o equal_a witness_n in_o thy_o conscience_n if_o ever_o quaker_n write_v or_o say_v any_o such_o thing_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n o_o far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o and_o very_o great_a and_o heavy_a will_v the_o damnation_n of_o j._n faldo_n be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o lord_n unless_o he_o shall_v unfeigned_o repent_v because_o of_o these_o detestable_a lie_n that_o he_o seem_v wilful_o to_o fasten_v upon_o our_o write_n what_o william_n smith_n say_v reflect_v not_o in_o the_o least_o upon_o the_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o those_o doctrine_n which_o be_v true_o receive_v thence_o no_o such_o word_n can_v be_v produce_v by_o our_o adversary_n have_v w._n s._n write_v any_o such_o thing_n he_o that_o add_v so_o much_o that_o be_v not_o we_o be_v to_o suppose_v will_v not_o have_v omit_v mention_v of_o that_o if_o it_o have_v be_v but_o w._n smith_n address_v himself_o to_o that_o adulterate_v spirit_n which_o have_v defile_v nation_n that_o nevertheless_o be_v under_o the_o profession_n of_o god_n scripture_n and_o religious_a worship_n though_o in_o work_n they_o deny_v god_n and_o as_o concern_v scripture_n and_o true_a worship_n gross_o err_v not_o know_v the_o power_n of_o god_n nor_o how_o to_o worship_v he_o in_o spirit_n and_o in_o truth_n not_o that_o he_o ever_o dare_v to_o entertain_v so_o blasphemous_a a_o apprehension_n of_o those_o holy_a write_n or_o those_o doctrine_n that_o be_v true_o receive_v thence_o as_o be_v suggest_v by_o our_o most_o unfair_a adversary_n and_o be_v it_o not_o the_o height_n of_o all_o unrighteousness_n to_o our_o neighbour_n that_o when_o he_o condemn_v the_o degenerate_v spirit_n knowledge_n and_o worship_n of_o any_o people_n however_o profess_v the_o scripture_n and_o it_o may_v be_v pretend_v to_o believe_v according_o as_o w._n smith_n do_v all_o apostate_n christian_n j._n faldo_n shall_v infer_v that_o his_o neighbour_n call_v the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o not_o a_o wrong_a knowledge_n of_o they_o will-worship_n corruption_n rottenness_n deceitful_a whore's-cup_n apostasy_n earthly_a root_n graven_n image_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o he_o shall_v intend_v nothing_o less_o than_o opposition_n betwixt_o the_o spirit_n and_o its_o own_o scripture_n there_o need_v no_o further_a confutation_n than_o the_o gross_a and_o black_a envy_n of_o our_o adversary_n about_o this_o one_o passage_n be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o we_o do_v affirm_v the_o scripture_n never_o do_v jar_n with_o the_o spirit_n nor_o the_o spirit_n oppose_v himself_o against_o the_o scripture_n and_o thus_o much_o our_o write_n can_v plentiful_o prove_v to_o all_o sober_a enquirer_n §_o 3._o but_o he_o offer_v another_o and_o the_o last_o proof_n of_o his_o charge_n from_o j._n naylor_n that_o of_o this_o sort_n be_v they_o false_a prophet_n as_o i_o suppose_v 120._o he_o mean_v who_o have_v their_o preach_v from_o study_n and_o other_o man_n mouth_n and_o not_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n from_o which_o he_o infer_v that_o what_o we_o have_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o from_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o query_n i_o will_v know_v say_v he_o of_o the_o quaker_n what_o they_o will_v make_v of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v say_v to_o jeremiah_n jer._n 15._o 19_o thou_o shall_v be_v as_o my_o mouth_n our_o mean_v be_v still_o overlooked_a by_o this_o disingenuous_a adversary_n and_o a_o quite_o contrary_a thing_n substitute_v the_o natural_a purport_n of_o the_o word_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o this_o that_o though_o the_o thing_n declare_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o the_o holy_a ancient_n and_o jeremiah_n as_o god_n mouth_n not_o his_o mouth_n therefore_o to_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n yea_o and_o much_o of_o it_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o we_o too_o yet_o for_o man_n to_o say_v any_o part_n thereof_o by_o write_v especial_o if_o they_o add_v their_o own_o comment_n and_o gloss_n fraim_v from_o study_n to_o any_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o cry_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n or_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o not_o in_o the_o same_o live_a sense_n nor_o upon_o the_o like_a commission_n every_o such_o one_o do_v rob_v his_o neighbour_n and_o steal_v his_o word_n and_o he_o be_v no_o more_o a_o true_a prophet_n for_o so_o do_v than_o a_o parrot_n be_v a_o man_n because_o he_o can_v talk_v if_o then_o no_o such_o creature_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v repute_v rational_a nor_o what_o he_o say_v reason_n as_o to_o he_o though_o so_o in_o itself_o because_o it_o proceed_v not_o from_o the_o root_n and_o principle_n of_o reason_n but_o by_o mere_a imitation_n and_o consequent_o a_o prater_n in_o no_o case_n to_o be_v mind_v neither_o be_v he_o a_o true_a prophet_n nor_o that_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n with_o respect_n to_o that_o prophet_n who_o have_v not_o receive_v what_o he_o deliver_v from_o the_o immediate_a word_n of_o god_n himself_o but_o by_o hear-say_n or_o mere_a imitation_n no_o he_o be_v but_o a_o very_a babbler_n and_o beget_v people_n no_o further_o then_o into_o mere_a word_n and_o imaginary_a gloss_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o that_o uncertainty_n that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n about_o religion_n the_o scripture_n than_o be_v to_o we_o obliege_v as_o the_o thing_n they_o declare_v of_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o several_a age_n temporal_a command_n except_v and_o they_o be_v not_o without_o a_o mouth_n yet_o they_o and_o jeremiah_n too_o be_v inferior_a to_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n which_o speak_v in_o this_o evangelical_n dispensation_n the_o will_n of_o god_n unto_o mankind_n after_o a_o more_o live_v and_o immediate_a manner_n as_o be_v prophesy_v of_o old_a and_o i_o may_v thus_o far_o gratify_v our_o adversary_n curiosity_n about_o god_n mouth_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v the_o mouth_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n in_o all_o age_n have_v be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o write_n of_o those_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n as_o they_o be_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n reveal_v god_n will_n in_o their_o heart_n that_o they_o may_v declare_v it_o whether_o by_o word_n of_o mouth_n or_o write_v to_o the_o people_n and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a order_n and_o descent_n of_o thing_n §_o 4._o but_o he_o have_v one_o kick_n more_o at_o we_o before_o he_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n in_o his_o misrepresentation_n of_o we_o concern_v the_o scripture_n 129._o the_o quaker_n hold_v it_o be_v a_o sin_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o idolatry_n to_o believe_v and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o instruction_n and_o holy_a example_n express_v in_o and_o by_o the_o scripture_n except_o we_o have_v they_o by_o immediate_a inspiration_n and_o at_o first_o hand_n as_o the_o apostle_n receive_v they_o and_o now_o say_v he_o i_o be_o come_v to_o the_o high_a round_n of_o their_o ladder_n indeed_o those_o round_n of_o ladder_n be_v very_o dangerous_a place_n i_o will_v not_o say_v how_o often_o nor_o for_o what_o a_o army_n chaplin_n may_v deserve_v to_o be_v so_o high_a exalt_v but_o since_o his_o eager_a pursuit_n after_o a_o innocent_a people_n have_v bring_v he_o actual_o thither_o and_o it_o fall_v to_o my_o lot_n to_o be_v his_o executioner_n i_o shall_v take_v all_o the_o care_n i_o can_v to_o acquit_v myself_o well_o of_o my_o employment_n i_o will_v warrant_v he_o for_o ever_o come_v down_o the_o same_o way_n he_o go_v up_o in_o order_n to_o which_o let_v we_o first_o hear_v what_o kind_n of_o speech_n he_o will_v make_v we_o to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n william_n dewsbury_n in_o his_o discovery_n of_o man_n return_n pag._n 21._o all_o people_n may_v search_v the_o scripture_n and_o see_v how_o you_o have_v be_v deceive_v by_o your_o teacher_n who_o have_v cause_v you_o to_o seek_v your_o lose_a god_n in_o carnal_a and_o dead_a observation_n which_o they_o have_v not_o any_o
scripture_n for_o what_o this_o be_v to_o his_o purpose_n i_o can_v understand_v to_o be_v sure_a it_o be_v for_o we_o for_o w._n d._n be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v it_o idolatry_n to_o live_v up_o to_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o condemn_v their_o seek_v for_o the_o true_a god_n where_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v which_o say_v he_o they_o have_v no_o scripture_n for_o as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v that_o they_o seek_v after_o god_n not_o according_a to_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o be_v both_o deceiver_n and_o deceive_v certain_o this_o be_v a_o miserable_a farewell_o he_o take_v of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o book_n and_o the_o quaker_n denial_n of_o the_o scripture_n that_o they_o shall_v therefore_o affirm_v a_o practice_n according_a to_o scripture_n without_o immediate_a inspiration_n idolatrous_a because_o they_o assert_v such_o to_o be_v deceive_v who_o seek_v after_o god_n not_o according_a to_o scripture_n if_o so_o much_o impertinency_n shall_v fall_v from_o a_o poor_a quaker_n pen_n what_o reproach_n insolence_n and_o triumph_n will_v there_o be_v but_o he_o have_v another_o witness_n that_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o witness_n his_o charge_n against_o we_o may_v be_v not_o establish_v but_o evident_o disprove_v §_o 5._o and_o this_o be_v babylon_n the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n viz._n to_o read_v and_o practice_n as_o the_o 126._o saint_n do_v and_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o the_o abomination_n of_o all_o uncleanness_n w._n smith_n morning_n watch_v p._n 23._o forgery_n in_o the_o abstract_n as_o base_a black_a and_o dishonest_a as_o man_n can_v be_v to_o man._n what!_o rob_v he_o of_o truth_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n foist_v in_o put_v out_o alter_z gloss_n pervert_v and_o what_o he_o please_v what_o make_v we_o lve_v against_o god_n his_o servant_n scripture_n the_o light_n within_o and_o our_o own_o soul_n but_o i_o have_v the_o less_o need_n to_o make_v our_o defence_n where_o his_o manifest_a corruption_n of_o our_o word_n accuse_v he_o and_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o charge_n in_o this_o chapter_n have_v do_v it_o at_o large_a only_o thus_o much_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o say_v that_o if_o word_n urge_v upon_o one_o subject_a shall_v be_v apply_v to_o another_o of_o a_o different_a nature_n and_o that_o our_o adversary_n can_v never_o prove_v his_o charge_n against_o we_o but_o by_o abuse_v corrupt_a misrendering_a and_o interlineat_v our_o word_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v much_o concern_v ourselves_o in_o the_o consequence_n of_o such_o debate_n that_o way_n of_o demonstration_n will_v save_v we_o the_o labour_n of_o a_o vindication_n with_o all_o sober_a person_n but_o he_o have_v not_o do_v with_o we_o yet_o §_o 6._o i_o be_o even_o tire_v with_o search_v the_o sulphureous_a vein_n of_o the_o pit_n and_o mire_n of_o quakerism_n the_o root_n of_o all_o which_o be_v the_o deify_v light_n 127._o within_o if_o you_o have_v not_o enough_o of_o this_o smoke_n to_o satisfy_v you_o it_o be_v the_o bottomless_a pit_n it_o rise_v out_o of_o i_o will_v give_v you_o two_o ebullition_n more_o and_o then_o leave_v you_o satisfy_v or_o to_o get_v better_a sense_n so_o among_o the_o word_n you_o find_v how_o the_o saint_n in_o some_o thing_n walk_v and_o what_o they_o practise_v and_o then_o you_o strive_v to_o make_v that_o thing_n to_o yourselves_o and_o to_o observe_v and_o do_v it_o as_o near_o as_o you_o can_v and_o here_o you_o be_v find_v transgressor_n of_o the_o just_a law_n of_o god_n who_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o make_v to_o thyself_o any_o graven_n image_n nor_o the_o likeness_n of_o any_o thing_n and_o say_v j._n faldo_n it_o follow_v now_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o in_o the_o ground_n betwixt_o you_o and_o the_o pope_n though_o in_o the_o appearance_n there_o seem_v to_o be_v such_o a_o great_a space_n i_o have_v be_v the_o more_o punctual_a in_o the_o recital_n of_o this_o that_o i_o may_v show_v to_o my_o adversary_n i_o will_v be_v just_a to_o he_o though_o he_o be_v most_o egregious_o unmanly_a with_o we_o he_o say_v that_o he_o be_v even_o tire_v indeed_o he_o have_v reason_n for_o it_o though_o for_o nothing_o else_o for_o who_o ever_o get_v any_o thing_n by_o beat_v the_o air_n or_o spit_v against_o the_o heaven_n the_o sulphureous_a pit_n of_o quakerism_n we_o can_v in_o one_o sense_n allow_v and_o j._n f._n may_v be_v better_o acquaint_v with_o it_o for_o the_o plague_n which_o the_o never-dying_a worm_n the_o sharp_a reprove_v condemn_v light_n within_o will_v inflict_v upon_o the_o spirit_n of_o they_o who_o resist_v and_o gainsay_v the_o truth_n be_v apt_o resemble_v to_o a_o sulphureous_a bottomless_a pit_n sulphureous_a because_o of_o the_o insufferableness_n of_o the_o smoke_n a_o bottomless_a pit_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o dismal_a endless_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o wo._n and_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o j._n faldo_n have_v a_o earnest_a of_o this_o for_o his_o attempt_n against_o the_o light_n and_o the_o child_n of_o it_o this_o long_a discourse_n be_v no_o more_o to_o we_o then_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o trash_n that_o we_o have_v already_o reject_v as_o his_o own_o invention_n and_o base_a perversion_n of_o our_o real_a meaning_n take_v w._n smith_n in_o his_o own_o sense_n and_o belief_n and_o all_o be_v well_o but_o receive_v he_o in_o j._n faldo_n disguise_n and_o true_o we_o shall_v not_o know_v he_o ourselves_o he_o intend_v that_o all_o those_o real_a experiment_n of_o other_o person_n of_o which_o the_o scripture_n be_v full_a talk_v unexperimental_o over_o by_o unregenerate_v spirit_n can_v be_v no_o way_n beneficial_a nay_o that_o what_o idea_n or_o notion_n they_o may_v have_v to_o themselves_o of_o the_o holy_a ancient_n enjoyment_n while_o altogether_o unacquainted_a with_o they_o be_v but_o a_o kind_n of_o image_n which_o their_o believe_v in_o and_o bowing_z to_z as_o indispensible_a gospel-truths_n be_v to_o be_v repute_v nothing_o below_o idolatry_n itself_o yet_o far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o to_o say_v that_o to_o believe_v the_o truth_n as_o declare_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v idolatry_n as_o well_o as_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a folly_n in_o any_o so_o to_o say_v or_o think_v of_o we_o when_o not_o only_o we_o be_v most_o careful_a and_o desirous_a of_o render_v what_o we_o believe_v pure_o scriptural_a but_o i_o do_v declare_v that_o as_o no_o man_n can_v live_v the_o life_n of_o the_o scripture_n without_o the_o operation_n of_o that_o spirit_n which_o give_v they_o forth_o so_o to_o live_v up_o to_o what_o they_o do_v exhort_v and_o declare_v be_v the_o high_a pitch_n of_o purity_n man_n nature_n be_v capable_a of_o aim_v at_o and_o attain_v to_o §_o 7._o he_o now_o intend_v to_o wind_v up_o his_o discourse_n on_o the_o present_a subject_n with_o a_o retrospective_n and_o contract_a argument_n of_o all_o those_o particular_a distinct_a charge_n viz._n they_o who_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n equal_a their_o own_o write_n &_o 139_o say_n deny_v they_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n a_o judge_n of_o religious_a controversy_n take_v man_n off_o from_o read_v they_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v come_v to_o know_v god_n or_o christ_n or_o ourselves_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v no_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n and_o be_v dangerous_a to_o be_v read_v deny_v they_o to_o be_v profitable_a but_o as_o experience_a put_v scripture_n and_o spirit_n in_o opposition_n affirm_v the_o doctrine_n command_n and_o holy_a example_n express_v in_o the_o scripture_n as_o such_o to_o be_v not_o at_o all_o bind_n to_o we_o hold_v it_o as_o the_o sin_n of_o idolatry_n to_o believe_v and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o instruction_n and_o holy_a example_n express_v in_o and_o by_o the_o scripture_n except_o we_o have_v they_o by_o immediate_a revelation_n as_o the_o apostle_n they_o who_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n mention_v in_o the_o foregoing_a particular_n deny_v the_o scripture_n but_o the_o quaker_n do_v all_o these_o thing_n therefore_o they_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o which_o i_o return_v this_o argument_n if_o to_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o make_v what_o write_n be_v give_v forth_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n relative_a of_o the_o scripture_n if_o not_o to_o prefer_v any_o write_n before_o the_o scripture_n nor_o equal_v they_o to_o the_o scripture_n if_o to_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v most_o proper_o the_o general_n rule_n of_o faith_n and_o life_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o not_o the_o spirit_n rather_o if_o not_o to_o take_v man_n off_o from_o read_v the_o scripture_n for_o instruction_n etc._n etc._n if_o
not_o to_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o man_n may_v come_v to_o know_v god_n christ_n or_o ourselves_o if_o to_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v a_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n not_o dangerous_a to_o be_v read_v if_o to_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v read_v to_o any_o profit_n without_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n especial_o by_o such_o as_o know_v they_o not_o who_o be_v in_o a_o rebellious_a and_o unregenerate_a state_n if_o never_o to_o dare_v to_o put_v the_o scripture_n and_o spirit_n in_o opposition_n to_o each_o other_o if_o not_o to_o affirm_v the_o doctrine_n expression_n and_o holy_a example_n as_o such_o not_o to_o be_v bind_v temporary_a service_n except_v if_o to_o hold_v it_o as_o no_o sin_n of_o idolatry_n nor_o any_o other_o to_o believe_v and_o live_v according_a to_o the_o instruction_n and_o holy_a example_n express_v in_o and_o by_o the_o scripture_n if_o to_o do_v all_o these_o thing_n so_o mention_v be_v not_o to_o deny_v contemn_v and_o undervalue_v but_o rather_o to_o honour_n right_o instate_v and_o recommend_v the_o scripture_n then_o the_o quaker_n who_o believe_v and_o do_v all_o this_o be_v not_o denyer_n but_o owner_n asserter_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o far_o as_o they_o themselves_o desire_v to_o be_v defend_v but_o we_o have_v large_o prove_v that_o so_o to_o do_v be_v not_o to_o deny_v they_o and_o that_o the_o quaker_n so_o hold_v therefore_o the_o quaker_n be_v no_o denyer_n but_o maintainer_n of_o the_o true_a and_o divine_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n §_o 8._o for_o his_o comparison_n of_o we_o with_o the_o papist_n though_o he_o have_v be_v so_o cunning_a or_o unjust_a rather_o as_o to_o quote_v their_o author_n and_o not_o we_o and_o some_o passage_n we_o just_o doubt_v it_o be_v ridiculous_a and_o every_o way_n unworthy_a of_o our_o notice_n a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n and_o by_o what_o we_o can_v guess_v design_v only_o to_o bring_v a_o odium_n upon_o we_o he_o put_v the_o scripture_n in_o the_o middle_n and_o the_o quaker_n and_o papist_n like_o the_o two_o thief_n upon_o the_o cross_n on_o each_o side_n to_o discover_v their_o harmonious_a agreement_n against_o they_o which_o of_o they_o he_o make_v to_o be_v he_o that_o shall_v go_v to_o paradise_n i_o know_v not_o but_o we_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n but_o we_o can_v never_o allow_v of_o the_o comparison_n since_o the_o papist_n place_v the_o rule_n and_o judgship_n in_o a_o pope_n or_o general_a council_n and_o the_o quaker_n in_o the_o eternal_a unerrable_n holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o consequent_o our_o adversary_n be_v base_o irreverent_a to_o god_n that_o bring_v the_o pope_n or_o a_o council_n of_o fallible_a man_n upon_o a_o comparison_n with_o his_o infallible_a spirit_n nor_o if_o it_o be_v true_a will_v it_o be_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o since_o protestant_n will_v not_o allow_v themselves_o to_o be_v therefore_o papist_n because_o in_o several_a thing_n they_o agree_v as_o about_o god_n eternity_n christ_n his_o life_n death_n suffering_n resurrection_n last_o judgement_n and_o eternal_a recompense_n §_o 9_o to_o conclude_v we_o dare_v leave_v it_o with_o god_n and_o all_o sober_a man_n to_o judge_v how_o far_o j._n faldo_n have_v abuse_v we_o in_o give_v in_o so_o black_a a_o charge_n against_o we_o and_o traduce_v our_o person_n and_o pervert_v our_o write_n to_o prove_v it_o by_o base_a character_n fasten_v upon_o the_o one_o and_o false_a inference_n charge_v upon_o the_o other_o which_o of_o themselves_o conspire_v the_o overthrow_n of_o their_o inventor_n and_o thus_o be_v he_o fair_o turn_v off_o from_o the_o high_a round_n of_o the_o ladder_n which_o he_o have_v so_o unadvised_o adventure_v to_o mount_v and_o as_o it_o fare_v with_o some_o notorious_a malefactor_n he_o remain_v there_o pendent_a as_o a_o monument_n of_o his_o own_o rash_a and_o dishonest_a undertake_n to_o the_o terror_n of_o all_o passenger_n who_o shall_v happen_v to_o travel_v by_o this_o way_n of_o controversy_n to_o the_o land_n of_o truth_n chap._n x._o he_o charge_v we_o with_o a_o denial_n of_o all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n first_o in_o general_n then_o in_o particular_a his_o proof_n of_o the_o first_o invalid_n his_o great_a disingenuity_n in_o wrest_v our_o word_n especial_o i._o pennington_n §_o 1._o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o book_n begin_v with_o the_o quaker_n denial_n of_o all_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o it_o be_v more_o than_o possible_a that_o we_o shall_v prove_v he_o ere_o we_o part_v not_o only_o to_o 5._o be_v a_o denier_n of_o the_o true_a gospel_n ordinance_n but_o indeed_o a_o introducer_n of_o another_o gospel_n if_o such_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v but_o to_o his_o charge_n first_o in_o general_n then_o in_o particular_a the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o general_n by_o which_o say_v he_o i_o understand_v not_o those_o of_o nature_n book_n nor_o what_o be_v reveal_v by_o moses_n but_o those_o ordinance_n which_o be_v command_v by_o precept_n or_o prescribe_v by_o example_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n now_o to_o prove_v what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o quaker_n he_o cite_v g._n fox_n thus_o and_o we_o say_v he_o christ_n have_v triumph_v over_o the_o ordinance_n and_o blot_v they_o out_o and_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v touch_v and_o the_o saint_n have_v christ_n in_o they_o who_o be_v the_o end_n of_o outward_a form_n g._n mist_n p._n 52._o in_o all_o which_o i_o find_v no_o denial_n of_o gospel_n ordinance_n nor_o be_v they_o so_o much_o as_o mean_v by_o he_o his_o language_n be_v scriptural_a for_o christ_n do_v blot_v out_o the_o handwriting_n of_o ordinance_n and_o he_o be_v to_o the_o saint_n then_o and_o be_v to_o those_o now_o who_o right_o believe_v in_o he_o the_o end_n of_o all_o meat_n drink_n wash_n day_n or_o any_o other_o temporal_a elementary_a or_o figurative_a worship_n for_o j._n faldo_n then_o to_o charge_v a_o denial_n of_o all_o gospel-ordinance_n upon_o these_o word_n be_v to_o plead_v for_o a_o legal_a dispensation_n and_o bondage_n to_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n to_o come_v thereby_o make_v christ_n come_v of_o none_o effect_v and_o consequent_o introduce_v of_o another_o gospel_n as_o speak_v the_o apostle_n beside_o that_o he_o base_o wrest_v our_o word_n §_o 2._o again_o but_o pennington_n be_v so_o cruel_a by_o that_o time_n he_o arrive_v to_o p._n 38._o of_o unity_n that_o he_o say_v such_o of_o the_o people_n of_o god_n as_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o lord_n perfect_o out_o of_o the_o city_n of_o abomination_n visible_a worship_n but_o be_v find_v in_o any_o part_n thereof_o when_o the_o lord_n come_v to_o judge_v she_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o spare_v they_o i_o perceive_v that_o unless_o we_o will_v allow_v j._n faldo_n the_o liberty_n of_o tell_v the_o world_n our_o mean_v or_o rather_o make_v his_o own_o to_o be_v we_o his_o essay_n come_v to_o nothing_o what_o word_n can_v be_v sound_a of_o their_o kind_a visible_a worship_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o which_o our_o adversary_n unworthy_o put_v in_o be_v not_o people_n to_o follow_v god_n full_o strange_a doctrine_n that_o he_o teach_v but_o grant_v he_o his_o gloss_n alias_o gross_a comment_n without_o distinction_n and_o i_o know_v he_o do_v his_o work_n but_o we_o be_v not_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v overlay_v we_o do_v declare_v that_o while_o man_n have_v body_n which_o be_v the_o visible_a part_n of_o man_n and_o the_o body_n of_o man_n be_v conversable_o concern_v in_o religious_a worship_n as_o well_o as_o the_o soul_n there_o will_v be_v there_o must_v be_v and_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o visible_a worship_n therefore_o most_o false_a be_v j._n faldo_n paraphrase_n yet_o thus_o far_o we_o can_v go_v that_o visible_a worship_n as_o such_o without_o a_o due_a regard_n to_o what_o kind_a of_o worship_n it_o may_v be_v and_o what_o be_v the_o root_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v can_v be_v well_o please_v to_o god_n for_o then_o that_o so_o splendid_a whore_n and_o deceitful_a prophet_n at_o large_a describe_v in_o the_o revelation_n of_o saint_n john_n will_v be_v therefore_o true_a worshipper_n because_o their_o worship_n be_v visible_a but_o i_o do_v perceive_v that_o here_o it_o pinch_v with_o almost_o all_o profession_n the_o quaker_n will_v put_v we_o off_o our_o own_o strive_n willing_n run_n in_o our_o own_o wisdom_n contrivance_n appointment_n whereby_o we_o must_v take_v up_o such_o a_o cross_n to_o self_n as_o be_v insupportable_a to_o flesh_n and_o blood_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v so_o which_o all_o must_v come_v to_o know_v a_o crucify_a of_o or_o they_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n here_o nor_o
what_o charge_v that_o upon_o we_o which_o our_o practice_n give_v the_o lie_n to_o every_o day_n but_o when_o we_o urge_v this_o against_o he_o and_o such_o like_a adversary_n than_o it_o be_v not_o that_o he_o have_v misrepresent_v we_o but_o that_o we_o have_v contradict_v ourselves_o but_o to_o clear_v the_o point_n if_o it_o can_v yet_o be_v doubtful_a we_o do_v believe_v there_o be_v one_o and_o but_o one_o universal_a church_n the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o that_o be_v in_o god_n anchor_v establish_v and_o build_v upon_o he_o the_o rock_n of_o age_n and_o foundation_n of_o many_o generation_n and_o as_o such_o neither_o be_v every_o visible_a society_n make_v profession_n of_o religion_n nor_o be_v all_o of_o they_o together_o that_o church_n but_o such_o alone_a who_o be_v wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lamb_n and_o ingraft_v into_o the_o true_a vine_n bring_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o holiness_n to_o the_o eternal_a honour_n glory_n and_o renown_n of_o christ_n the_o head_n who_o be_v over_o all_o god_n bless_v for_o evermore_o and_o though_o there_o be_v a_o mediate_v preach_v which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o spirit_n speak_v by_o such_o who_o he_o have_v anoint_v to_o preach_v yet_o it_o can_v be_v strict_o say_v that_o man_n preach_v or_o it_o be_v man_n ministry_n but_o rather_o the_o spirit_n by_o man_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o spirit_n be_v ministry_n and_o man_n only_o a_o mean_a or_o instrument_n through_o which_o the_o teach_v be_v convey_v or_o direction_n rather_o to_o the_o true_a teacher_n the_o light_n in_o the_o conscience_n not_o that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o sometime_o plentiful_o teach_v his_o child_n without_o any_o such_o mean_n too_o who_o be_v turn_v to_o the_o grace_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o believe_v and_o walk_v in_o his_o holy_a light_n where_o god_n be_v to_o be_v find_v and_o a_o access_n to_o this_o holy_a bless_a presence_n administer_v for_o he_o have_v both_o promise_v it_o of_o old_a and_o perform_v it_o in_o our_o day_n thus_o the_o apostle_n be_v preacher_n not_o from_o man_n nor_o by_o man_n but_o by_o the_o revelation_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n declare_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o god_n everlasting_a kingdom_n as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o so_o none_o be_v exempt_v for_o all_o may_v prophesy_v 31._o one_o by_o one_o that_o the_o church_n may_v be_v edify_v yet_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v that_o 1_o the_o man_n implicit_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n which_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o pillar_n of_o truth_n for_o such_o the_o quaker_n style_v a_o gospel-church_n 2_o that_o he_o affirm_v the_o true_a church_n to_o have_v other_o teacher_n than_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o lead_v guide_v and_o teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n only_o but_o by_o some_o other_o teacher_n also_o contrary_a to_o express_v scripture_n the_o promise_n of_o god_n and_o very_o end_v of_o the_o bless_a gospel_n if_o he_o say_v that_o he_o mean_v the_o apostle_n that_o be_v inspire_v i_o answer_v that_o be_v never_o deny_v by_o we_o because_o that_o be_v the_o teach_v of_o the_o spirit_n by_o they_o which_o be_v very_o little_o less_o then_o if_o it_o have_v be_v immediate_o in_o they_o so_o that_o one_o of_o these_o two_o thing_n must_v follow_v from_o his_o kind_n of_o argue_v either_o the_o apostle_n preach_v without_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n or_o preach_v as_o they_o be_v move_v of_o god_n spirit_n be_v their_o preach_v and_o not_o the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v that_o so_o plentiful_o dictate_v to_o they_o what_o they_o be_v to_o say_v but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o neither_o can_v be_v repute_v true_a by_o true_a christian_a man_n i_o conclude_v the_o quaker_n sound_n and_o their_o boast_a adversary_n heretical_a §_o 2._o but_o he_o think_v he_o have_v clear_o get_v the_o point_n of_o we_o about_o a_o quaker_n tell_v he_o they_o know_v that_o one_o of_o the_o dutch_a nation_n speak_v by_o the_o spirit_n in_o a_o meeting_n of_o we_o though_o in_o that_o language_n which_o be_v not_o understand_v by_o the_o meeting_n because_o they_o all_o find_a refresh_n i_o will_v be_v faithful_a in_o give_v his_o observation_n upon_o it_o of_o the_o unknown_a language_n he_o say_v this_o be_v orderly_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a mass_n who_o read_v prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n to_o the_o people_n but_o herein_o he_o wrong_v we_o for_o though_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o pure_a and_o single_a power_n of_o the_o almighty_a may_v both_o strike_v astonishment_n and_o give_v refreshment_n where_o the_o word_n utter_v be_v not_o always_o understand_v since_o he_o do_v both_o frequent_o without_o they_o and_o that_o understanding_n and_o sense_n be_v two_o thing_n for_o the_o devil_n may_v speak_v the_o best_a word_n in_o the_o bible_n and_o be_v a_o undiscovered_a devil_n still_o except_o by_o this_o divine_a light_n power_n or_o spirit_n he_o be_v inward_o manifest_v consequent_o a_o right_a sense_n may_v be_v have_v where_o word_n may_v not_o be_v understand_v which_o be_v the_o one_o tongue_n to_o the_o child_n of_o the_o light_n yet_o we_o not_o only_o decry_v all_o design_v obscurity_n by_o pray_v and_o preach_v in_o unknown_a language_n but_o with_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o choose_v rather_o by_o far_o to_o speak_v in_o a_o know_a tongue_n that_o the_o people_n may_v understand_v our_o word_n as_o well_o as_o have_v a_o sense_n of_o our_o spirit_n nor_o do_v ever_o any_o quaker_n yet_o pretend_v to_o be_v move_v to_o pray_v in_o a_o unknown_a language_n whilst_o he_o be_v master_n of_o that_o which_o be_v well_o know_v to_o the_o people_n since_o than_o we_o do_v affect_v such_o obscurity_n the_o case_n of_o all_o those_o papist_n who_o pray_v in_o latin_a rather_o than_o in_o their_o native_a and_o vulgar_a tongue_n he_o be_v very_o disingenuous_a in_o that_o reflection_n §_o 3._o upon_o the_o quaker_n reason_n why_o they_o know_v that_o declaration_n be_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n viz._n because_o they_o find_v refresh_n he_o bestow_v this_o confutation_n so_o have_v child_n many_o a_o time_n at_o puppet-play_n what_o a_o pass_n be_v these_o people_n come_v to_o who_o yet_o deny_v all_o teach_n of_o man_n but_o what_o a_o pass_n may_v i_o rather_o say_v have_v this_o man_n be_v implacable_a spirit_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n bring_v he_o to_o who_o to_o his_o dishonesty_n before_o add_v profaneness_n join_v with_o scoff_n and_o impudence_n when_o he_o deny_v all_o refreshment_n that_o come_v not_o by_o sound_n of_o word_n in_o a_o know_a tongue_n to_o be_v any_o more_o certainty_n from_o god_n spirit_n then_o the_o pleasure_n child_n take_v at_o puppet-play_n though_o he_o can_v not_o but_o think_v the_o person_n that_o speak_v to_o he_o mean_v by_o refresh_n what_o come_v from_o god_n &_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o proportion_n or_o comparison_n betwixt_o that_o pious_a answer_n and_o the_o ungodly_a sport_n of_o puppet-plays_a ben._n jonson_n alchemist_n which_o all_o good_a man_n detest_v and_o himself_o die_v abhor_a have_v nothing_o in_o it_o half_a so_o gross_a in_o abuse_n of_o religion_n i_o even_o tremble_v at_o the_o thought_n of_o that_o hand_n write_v upon_o the_o wall_n which_o this_o man_n impiety_n be_v write_v i_o fear_v with_o indelible_a character_n against_o he_o who_o will_v receive_v a_o just_a and_o certain_a recompense_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n for_o all_o his_o hard_a speech_n against_o the_o holy_a way_n of_o the_o lord_n §_o 4._o but_o let_v i_o not_o omit_v to_o show_v the_o blow_n he_o give_v his_o own_o cause_n in_o this_o expression_n since_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o we_o know_v no_o refreshment_n to_o be_v any_o more_o of_o god_n without_o know_a word_n then_o that_o of_o a_o puppet-play_n he_o know_v not_o any_o more_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o god_n above_o p._n 113._o nor_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o dictate_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n within_o 2._o part._n 9_o 10._o know_v word_n be_v except_v to_o be_v of_o god_n then_o that_o refreshment_n little_a child_n have_v in_o a_o puppet-play_n the_o consequence_n of_o which_o diabolical_a comparison_n be_v nothing_o less_o then_o to_o overthrow_v all_o inward_a sense_n of_o god_n presence_n or_o that_o refreshment_n which_o come_v from_o it_o and_o then_o indeed_o we_o must_v confess_v we_o shall_v be_v necessitate_v either_o to_o deny_v all_o teach_v or_o conclude_v with_o this_o antichristian_a priest_n that_o man_n be_v teach_v or_o ministry_n ought_v to_o be_v adhere_v to_o where_o if_o puppet-plays_a be_v
and_o saviour_n in_o my_o question_n i_o think_v 5._o they_o sober_a and_o i_o be_o sure_a i_o mean_v they_o of_o he_o that_o be_v before_o abraham_n that_o in_o time_n appear_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o people_n however_o he_o will_v disinterest_n we_o in_o they_o but_o indeed_o the_o way_n he_o take_v to_o do_v it_o will_v do_v we_o no_o harm_n for_o that_o he_o may_v insinuate_v we_o mean_v another_o thing_n he_o call_v it_o play_v at_o blind-man's-buff_n which_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o buffle_n head_a expression_n be_v this_o your_o gospel-minister_n let_v he_o go_v wrestle_v at_o morefield_n play_v football_n match_n turn_v ringer_n a_o practice_n he_o plead_v for_o in_o his_o book_n &_o leave_v off_o profane_v the_o holy_a name_n of_o god_n with_o such_o a_o unhallowed_a mouth_n and_o unbridled_a tongue_n some_o of_o my_o scripture-argument_n he_o pretend_v to_o refute_v i_o shall_v mention_v and_o what_o he_o object_n that_o both_o may_v be_v weigh_v in_o a_o equal_a balance_n §_o 5._o the_o first_o scripture_n by_o i_o urge_v be_v that_o in_o genes_n 6._o 3._o my_o spirit_n shall_v not_o always_o strive_v with_o man_n etc._n etc._n from_o whence_o i_o infer_v that_o 8._o god_n unerring_a spirit_n both_o do_v so_o strive_v either_o for_o conviction_n and_o conversion_n or_o to_o prompt_v to_o further_a attainment_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o at_o that_o time_n of_o the_o world_n without_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n to_o teach_v rule_n judge_n etc._n etc._n to_o which_o he_o say_v my_o argument_n be_v a_o thicket_n of_o impertinence_n that_o a_o body_n have_v need_n of_o good_a arithmetic_n to_o number_v the_o term_n that_o i_o be_o a_o none-such_a for_o dive_v if_o i_o can_v fetch_v up_o from_o this_o scripture_n what_o be_v mention_v in_o this_o proposition_n what_o need_v there_o be_v of_o all_o this_o little_a wit_n a_o better_a word_n for_o pedantry_n i_o know_v not_o and_o i_o believe_v more_o be_v of_o my_o mind_n but_o if_o my_o consequence_n be_v so_o impertinent_a and_o so_o numerous_a that_o ordinary_a arithmetic_n will_v not_o serve_v to_o reckon_v they_o and_o last_o so_o unnatural_a as_o the_o scripture_n will_v afford_v i_o not_o one_o of_o they_o i_o be_o great_o to_o be_v blame_v but_o because_o what_o he_o say_v for_o i_o may_v be_v of_o more_o force_n than_o all_o that_o i_o can_v offer_v let_v this_o passage_n be_v weigh_v it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o the_o spirit_n do_v strive_v with_o they_o to_o make_v they_o better_o than_o they_o be_v yet_o none_o of_o these_o end_n be_v express_v in_o the_o text_n a_o eminent_a contradiction_n to_o he_o and_o which_o be_v more_o to_o itself_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n strive_v to_o make_v they_o better_o then_o since_o that_o better_o consist_v in_o a_o discovery_n of_o good_a and_o evil_a with_o a_o election_n of_o the_o good_a and_o a_o denial_n of_o the_o evil_a i_o will_v fain_o know_v of_o j._n faldo_n how_o that_o can_v be_v and_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n not_o be_v what_o i_o have_v instance_a in_o my_o argument_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o judge_n of_o what_o be_v good_a from_o evil_a a_o rule_n how_o to_o choose_v one_o and_o refuse_v the_o other_o a_o guide_n to_o lead_v direct_v enable_v to_o the_o choice_n and_o preserve_v in_o it_o o_o weak_a man_n be_v this_o the_o upshot_n of_o all_o thy_o poor_a insult_v but_o why_o may_v not_o william_n penn_n express_v the_o scope_n of_o any_o scripture_n in_o his_o argument_n though_o he_o find_v not_o the_o very_a word_n in_o the_o text_n if_o it_o will_v bear_v they_o especial_o since_o j._n faldo_n himself_o allow_v it_o both_o in_o grant_v that_o the_o spirit_n strive_v to_o make_v they_o better_o which_o be_v not_o verbal_o express_v and_o by_o his_o weekly_a practice_n of_o preach_v where_o nothing_o be_v more_o frequent_a than_o his_o exposition_n and_o after_o a_o sort_n too_o which_o the_o text_n many_o time_n will_v not_o bear_v but_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o my_o question_n be_v to_o prove_v the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v indefinite_o or_o without_o difference_n of_o person_n and_o my_o proof_n speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n be_v 9_o strive_v with_o wicked_a men._n for_o this_o he_o cry_v out_o that_o i_o wander_v from_o truth_n and_o reason_n and_o be_o infatuate_v question_v if_o my_o conscience_n have_v any_o eye_n and_o have_v impudence_n enough_o to_o tell_v i_o that_o i_o be_o behold_v to_o he_o for_o give_v no_o further_a discovery_n of_o my_o vanity_n and_o folly_n etc._n etc._n how_o groundless_a his_o cavil_v and_o reflection_n be_v and_o with_o what_o rude_a and_o unhandsome_a term_n he_o be_v please_v to_o give_v they_o i_o need_v not_o trouble_v myself_o to_o show_v but_o certain_o if_o god_n afford_v bad_a man_n his_o spirit_n to_o strive_v with_o they_o then_o good_a man_n who_o can_v be_v such_o without_o it_o but_o sensual_a and_o devilish_a rather_o must_v needs_o have_v this_o holy_a spirit_n as_o well_o to_o preserve_v they_o as_o that_o be_v make_v they_o such_o if_o so_o then_o may_v we_o conclude_v our_o adversary_n weak_a as_o well_o as_o envious_a who_o from_o that_o text_n deny_v my_o proof_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o say_v that_o though_o all_o wicked_a man_n have_v the_o spirit_n strive_v good_a man_n have_v it_o not_o who_o conscience_n want_v eye_n at_o this_o time_n will_v not_o be_v hard_a to_o determine_v but_o sure_o i_o be_o it_o be_v his_o wisdom_n to_o leave_v off_o where_o he_o do_v since_o his_o repute_v my_o sober_a scriptural_a argument_n infatuation_n folly_n &c_n &c_n be_v the_o most_o evident_a mark_n of_o his_o own_o he_o can_v well_o have_v give_v we_o §_o 6._o the_o second_o scripture_n i_o urge_v and_o which_o he_o pervert_v be_v that_o in_o neh._n 3._o 20_o thou_o give_v also_o thy_o goo●_n spirit_n to_o instruct_v they_o which_o say_v he_o without_o be_v so_o ingenuous_a as_o to_o mention_v much_o less_o consider_v and_o answer_v my_o argument_n upon_o it_o be_v main_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n which_o he_o put_v upon_o moses_n and_o joshua_n for_o which_o he_o quote_v numb_a 11._o 17._o 27._o 18_o psal_n 77._o 20._o but_o do_v he_o think_v we_o so_o credulous_a as_o to_o receive_v this_o stuff_n for_o gospel_n certain_o we_o must_v commit_v the_o great_a cruelty_n upon_o our_o understanding_n to_o strain_v they_o to_o such_o a_o fiction_n he_o may_v with_o as_o good_a reason_n have_v say_v that_o the_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n by_o day_n and_o fire_n by_o night_n be_v see_v of_o none_o but_o moses_n and_o joshua_n as_o to_o grant_v they_o have_v the_o immediate_a and_o general_a benefit_n of_o they_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n deny_v they_o to_o have_v have_v the_o immediate_a benefit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_n beside_o have_v they_o not_o have_v some_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n they_o can_v never_o have_v know_v that_o moses_n have_v be_v so_o inspire_v nor_o have_v so_o willing_o bow_v under_o moses_n as_o they_o do_v and_o have_v show_v themselves_o so_o well_o assure_v of_o his_o conduct_n nor_o can_v the_o objection_n of_o their_o rebellion_n at_o time_n invalid_a our_o reason_n since_o it_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o sin_v not_o against_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o themselves_o but_o in_o moses_n only_o but_o because_o they_o do_v sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o themselves_o and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o great_a ground_n for_o charge_v of_o rebellion_n against_o they_o we_o may_v well_o conclude_v that_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n that_o be_v to_o conviction_n the_o scripture_n he_o bring_v be_v no_o more_o to_o his_o purpose_n than_o the_o story_n of_o toby_n and_o his_o dog_n for_o though_o there_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o spirit_n pour_v out_o upon_o moses_n joshua_n and_o other_o that_o be_v not_o common_a to_o the_o people_n yet_o this_o prove_v not_o that_o they_o be_v not_o without_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o teach_v they_o what_o be_v acceptable_a with_o god_n the_o difference_n be_v not_o that_o moses_n etc._n etc._n have_v the_o spirit_n and_o the_o people_n have_v it_o not_o but_o that_o he_o and_o some_o other_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o government_n and_o the_o people_n have_v it_o not_o but_o what_o be_v this_o for_o he_o do_v not_o the_o same_o eternal_a spirit_n that_o teach_v to_o rule_v also_o teach_v people_n to_o be_v rule_v nay_o i_o affirm_v that_o as_o god_n do_v gift_n several_a by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o govern_v and_o consequent_o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n so_o do_v he_o bestow_v of_o his_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o the_o people_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o
of_o private_a spirit_n and_o not_o rather_o of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n and_o such_o only_a as_o be_v conformable_a to_o it_o §_o 11._o his_o other_o cavil_v confirm_v the_o truth_n of_o my_o former_a argument_n and_o his_o own_o great_a ignorance_n or_o baseness_n my_o word_n be_v these_o if_o god_n send_v forth_o his_o spirit_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o child_n then_o be_v they_o not_o without_o a_o infallible_a spirit_n ground_v upon_o that_o scripture_n because_o you_o be_v son_n god_n have_v send_v forth_o the_o spirit_n of_o his_o son_n into_o your_o heart_n gal._n 4._o 6._o to_o which_o he_o say_v your_o adversary_n have_v not_o so_o little_a knowledge_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n as_o to_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v fallible_a nor_o yet_o so_o ignorant_a of_o your_o spirit_n and_o of_o the_o scripture_n as_o to_o say_v you_o be_v infallible_a now_o i_o have_v two_o thing_n to_o desire_v of_o the_o ingenuous_a reader_n first_o to_o find_v i_o out_o so_o much_o as_o one_o syllable_n in_o my_o argument_n that_o infer_v or_o conclude_v the_o spirit_n of_o such_o to_o be_v infallible_a into_o who_o heart_n god_n have_v shed_v abroad_o his_o infallible_a spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o or_o not_o or_o that_o i_o can_v intend_v a_o conclude_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n infallible_a because_o god_n have_v give_v his_o own_o unto_o man_n that_o be_v unquestionable_o so_o i_o be_o sure_a such_o a_o think_v never_o enter_v my_o mind_n as_o fruitful_a of_o they_o as_o our_o adversary_n may_v be_v adversary_n i_o may_v well_o say_v not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v one_o but_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o i_o as_o much_o which_o let_v he_o know_v however_o i_o be_o not_o such_o to_o he_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o have_v to_o desire_v of_o the_o candid_a reader_n be_v that_o he_o will_v weigh_v with_o himself_o how_o unjust_a this_o man_n be_v to_o i_o to_o infer_v infallibility_n to_o man_n from_o my_o affirm_v it_o to_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o as_o if_o he_o fear_v i_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o heterodox_n as_o his_o envy_n will_v have_v i_o to_o conclude_v on_o my_o account_n from_o what_o i_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n child_n in_o all_o age_n have_v a_o infallible_a spirit_n to_o judge_n rule_n and_o guide_v they_o the_o affirmative_a of_o the_o very_a question_n debate_v that_o be_v god_n spirit_n that_o every_o such_o one_o be_v infallible_a in_o and_o from_o his_o own_o private_a spirit_n oh_o monstrous_a perversion_n i_o will_v impute_v it_o to_o his_o mistake_n of_o i_o it_o be_v far_o better_a to_o be_v ignorant_a than_o dishonest_a but_o he_o will_v not_o let_v i_o who_o a_o little_a below_o have_v impudence_n enough_o to_o write_v but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o your_o principle_n make_v no_o difference_n or_o distinction_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n people_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n manifest_o intend_v not_o that_o they_o be_v at_o variance_n for_o so_o we_o shall_v esteem_v his_o charge_n a_o piece_n of_o justice_n but_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v but_o one_o spirit_n a_o absurdity_n that_o never_o fall_v from_o we_o how_o many_o time_n have_v j._n faldo_n be_v guilty_a in_o his_o discourse_n of_o plain_a forgery_n and_o dishonesty_n against_o we_o so_o certain_a as_o there_o be_v a_o god_n in_o heaven_n terrible_a will_v his_o judgement_n be_v in_o that_o great_a day_n of_o inquest_n if_o he_o repent_v not_o §_o 12._o he_o make_v a_o great_a stir_n about_o my_o check_v the_o late_a socinian_n for_o make_v christ_n the_o head_n of_o a_o fallible_a body_n say_v if_o christ_n 23._o be_v head_n to_o none_o but_o the_o infallible_a woe_n to_o the_o poor_a saint_n who_o have_v trust_v hitherto_o they_o have_v a_o head_n in_o heaven_n who_o have_v pity_n on_o the_o ignorant_a and_o those_o that_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a christ_n be_v then_o none_o of_o your_o head_n we_o have_v enough_o and_o leave_v his_o very_a ill_a language_n out_o 1._o it_o be_v grant_v to_o we_o that_o christ_n be_v head_n to_o a_o fallible_a body_n or_o at_o least_o to_o fallible_a as_o well_o as_o infallible_a i_o charge_v he_o to_o give_v we_o one_o scripture_n for_o this_o or_o he_o be_v go_v for_o all_o his_o idle_a pun_n shift_n and_o scoff_v fling_v at_o we_o 2._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o saint_n which_o if_o we_o take_v it_o strict_o be_v one_o of_o that_o number_n the_o apostle_n pray_v the_o church_n may_v be_v of_o i_o mean_v those_o which_o be_v sanctify_v throughout_o in_o body_n soul_n and_o spirit_n i_o say_v that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v such_o a_o saint_n and_o yet_o be_v fallible_a or_o err_v 3._o that_o the_o saint_n be_v ignorant_a and_o out_o of_o the_o way_n true_o this_o doctrine_n very_o well_o become_v j._n faldo_n i_o have_v rather_o it_o shall_v be_v his_o then_o i_o i_o will_v venture_v they_o in_o the_o scale_n of_o truth_n without_o think_v i_o run_v a_o hazard_n in_o the_o matter_n especial_o when_o if_o i_o err_v that_o hinder_v not_o from_o be_v a_o saint_n &_o member_n of_o christ_n but_o j._n faldo_n can_v a_o man_n be_v a_o saint_n and_o yet_o ignorant_a of_o so_o much_o of_o god_n as_o be_v requisite_a to_o constitute_v he_o such_o or_o can_v he_o be_v such_o and_o yet_o out_o of_o that_o way_n which_o render_v he_o a_o true_a saint_n it_o be_v the_o first_o time_n that_o i_o ever_o hear_v in_o so_o many_o word_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o saint_n and_o out_o of_o god_n way_n oh_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n no_o marvel_v so_o many_o unclean_a fowl_n flock_v to_o this_o carcase_n what!_o saint_n and_o err_v from_o god_n way_n strange_a saint_n and_o ignorant_a of_o god_n mind_n it_o seem_v then_o that_o neither_o ignorance_n nor_o err_v from_o god_n way_n indispose_v any_o to_o be_v saint_n if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o plain_a contradiction_n to_o the_o whole_a record_n of_o scripture_n none_o ever_o be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v esteem_v such_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n how_o many_o how_o grievous_a and_o how_o sharp_a have_v god_n complaint_n be_v against_o those_o who_o have_v leave_v the_o right_a way_n of_o the_o lord_n which_o have_v be_v the_o way_n of_o light_n and_o righteousness_n the_o just_a man_n path_n through_o every_o generation_n no_o wonder_n that_o such_o doctrine_n be_v hoth_o greedy_o receive_v and_o furious_o maintain_v that_o sooth_n up_o people_n in_o the_o belief_n of_o such_o pernicious_a soul-murdering_a doctrine_n and_o the_o truth_n be_v and_o i_o do_v bold_o affirm_v it_o and_o that_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n it_o be_v our_o strike_v so_o constant_o and_o earnest_o at_o this_o and_o such_o like_a sin-pleasing_a principle_n that_o make_v the_o devil_n thus_o bestir_v himself_o in_o his_o ready_a agent_n to_o raise_v up_o and_o bespatter_v we_o with_o such_o heavy_a calumny_n as_o almost_o every_o one_o produce_v against_o we_o but_o we_o lose_v not_o a_o inch_n of_o ground_n nor_o a_o dram_n of_o courage_n our_o godly_a resolution_n redouble_v with_o our_o adversary_n onsets_a and_o whatever_o may_v befall_v we_o here_o as_o our_o hope_n so_o our_o reward_n be_v from_o god_n in_o that_o high_a and_o heavenly_a place_n which_o be_v above_o the_o reach_n of_o time_n and_o every_o assault_n of_o our_o implacable_a adversary_n §_o 13._o he_o tell_v i_o he_o may_v proceed_v to_o my_o fallacious_a argue_n from_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v indefinite_o express_v that_o be_v by_o scripture_n vision_n 24._o providence_n etc._n etc._n mean_v our_o adversary_n to_o its_o teach_v peculiarly_a frequent_o in_o my_o pampblet_n pag._n 18_o 29_o etc._n etc._n that_o be_v to_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v man_n and_o woman_n by_o its_o daily_a and_o inward_a discovery_n motion_n and_o operation_n but_o he_o will_v not_o the_o reason_n be_v he_o dare_v not_o for_o if_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o a_o immediate_a live_a teacher_n and_o work_v not_o as_o such_o to_o the_o information_n conviction_n and_o conversion_n of_o man_n to_o god_n in_o these_o day_n let_v he_o for_o shame_n relinquish_v all_o pretence_n to_o gospel_n or_o a_o evangelical_n dispensation_n of_o which_o it_o be_v the_o peculiar_a promise_n and_o privilege_n §_o 14._o though_o for_o want_n of_o better_a language_n he_o be_v please_v to_o bestow_v upon_o this_o godly_a proposition_n the_o term_n of_o beetle-headed_a say_v 27._o and_o affirm_v that_o the_o scripture_n know_v nothing_o of_o it_o for_o which_o i_o may_v more_o reasonable_o affirm_v that_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o it_o for_o can_v this_o man_n be_v so_o besot_v as_o to_o think_v that_o when_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v
to_o be_v the_o great_a rule_n to_o believer_n and_o yet_o himself_o after_o much_o opposition_n to_o give_v it_o away_o and_o accord_n as_o far_o as_o any_o man_n need_v to_o do_v that_o will_v be_v of_o one_o mind_n with_o we_o in_o the_o point_n savour_v of_o great_a weakness_n and_o inadvertency_n not_o that_o he_o now_o speak_v truth_n but_o that_o he_o shall_v so_o eager_a lie_n oppose_v it_o before_o §_o 17._o there_o be_v one_o passage_n more_o which_o be_v to_o this_o purpose_n i_o will_v mention_v we_o value_v not_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o print_n 30._o sake_n but_o the_o print_n for_o the_o sense_n sake_n and_o the_o blessing_n that_o attend_v that_o way_n of_o convey_v the_o holy_a and_o reveal_v will_n of_o god_n and_o so_o much_o as_o to_o correct_v your_o vapour_n this_o he_o speak_v upon_o my_o word_n that_o the_o intimate_v of_o a_o prince_n need_v not_o so_o much_o a_o edict_n because_o in_o print_n as_o because_o of_o his_o live_n and_o more_o immediate_a touch_v he_o may_v have_v have_v from_o his_o prince_n now_o let_v any_o tell_v i_o if_o the_o quaker_n have_v put_v the_o scripture_n into_o any_o degree_n below_o that_o wherein_o j._n faldo_n himself_o have_v place_v they_o do_v the_o quaker_n say_v that_o true_a christian_n have_v the_o spirit_n so_o say_v j._n faldo_n too_o do_v the_o quaker_n affirm_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v a_o judge_n rule_n and_o guide_n and_o speak_v forth_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n into_o the_o very_a conscience_n does_n j._n faldo_n come_v one_o jot_n behind_o they_o but_o do_v they_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o truth_n declare_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o put_v a_o value_n upon_o the_o declaration_n and_o that_o write_a or_o print_v word_n be_v value_v for_o the_o matter_n sake_n they_o treat_v of_o rather_o than_o their_o 30._o own_o yea_o that_o the_o scripture_n of_o itself_o can_v do_v little_a it_o be_v j._n faldo_n own_o doctrine_n 108._o very_o well_o but_o do_v j._n faldo_n say_v that_o god_n do_v not_o always_o speak_v in_o the_o conscience_n immediate_o by_o his_o spirit_n but_o sometime_o by_o the_o spirit_n through_o the_o use_v of_o mean_n as_o the_o scripture_n preach_v pray_v creator_n providence_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o by_o such_o way_n he_o reach_v into_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n so_o say_v the_o quaker_n too_o will_v the_o man_n but_o be_v certain_a to_o himself_o we_o need_v no_o other_o advocate_n but_o his_o ignorance_n of_o our_o principle_n or_o prejudice_n to_o misrepresent_v they_o make_v he_o at_o once_o oppose_v we_o and_o contradict_v himself_o and_o now_o we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o he_o say_v be_v to_o show_v i_o myself_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o sense_n if_o i_o think_v my_o eye_n worth_a a_o use_v indeed_o i_o do_v and_o be_o willing_a to_o behold_v all_o he_o have_v to_o show_v me●_n reader_n hear_v he_o sober_o §_o 18._o foul_n epithet_n as_o knave_n puppy_n fool_n rascal_n loggerhead_n cheat_n this_o you_o 30._o say_v be_v the_o language_n of_o your_o adversary_n small_a crier_n but_o as_o you_o call_v it_o of_o a_o loathsome_a sent._n it_o seem_v j._n faldo_n nose_n call_v it_o no_o such_o thing_n a_o long_a experience_a chaplin_n a_o kind_n of_o a_o religious_a gentleman-usher_n shall_v have_v learn_v better_a manner_n so_o say_v he_o you_o blow_v it_o on_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n within_o five_o line_n tryer_n of_o other_o man_n spirit_n who_o have_v it_o shall_v be_v give_v so_o little_a proof_n of_o the_o knowledge_n of_o their_o own_o as_o to_o be_v want_v in_o the_o very_a first_o principle_n of_o cavility_n this_o be_v not_o fair_a say_v j._n faldo_n to_o charge_v he_o with_o another_o fault_n it_o be_v some_o justice_n to_o we_o that_o he_o will_v account_v such_o language_n to_o a_o quaker_n a_o fault_n but_o i_o will_v have_v he_o know_v that_o i_o never_o intend_v any_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v base_o infer_v that_o be_v to_o make_v h._n hedworth_n in_o the_o least_o guilty_a of_o usual_o calling_n g._n fox_n those_o scurrilous_a name_n for_o though_o i_o think_v he_o envious_a enough_o against_o g._n f._n in_o particular_a as_o appear_v by_o another_o sort_n of_o language_n and_o the_o quaker_n in_o general_a yet_o i_o believe_v he_o to_o have_v more_o civility_n and_o regard_n to_o his_o way_n whatsoever_o he_o think_v of_o i_o then_o to_o dirt_n it_o with_o any_o thing_n so_o gross_a but_o for_o as_o much_o as_o t._n firman_n the_o author_n of_o that_o foul_a language_n be_v his_o great_a intimate_v and_o associate_v that_o they_o have_v in_o common_a the_o same_o creed_n be_v joint_o interest_v against_o we_o thereby_o earnest_o endeavour_v to_o promote_v their_o belove_a socinianism_n or_o bidleism_n in_o the_o world_n and_o man_n act_v not_o by_o two_o distinct_a spirit_n though_o one_o may_v launch_v forth_o more_o extravagant_o than_o the_o other_o and_o last_o that_o h._n h._n have_v show_v other_o sort_n of_o rudeness_n and_o injustice_n to_o we_o in_o general_a and_o many_o by_o name_n in_o his_o spirit_n of_o the_o quarter_n try_v i_o do_v say_v these_o man_n and_o continue_v there_o still_o the_o method_n of_o their_o proceed_v then_o and_o since_o especial_o that_o restless_a calumniator_n tho._n firman_n be_v such_o as_o must_v needs_o offend_v every_o good_a man_n knave_n and_o fool_n be_v more_o in_o his_o mouth_n still_o then_o become_v any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o more_o of_o both_o than_o such_o he_o very_o frequent_o call_v so_o some_o think_v it_o a_o shame_n that_o so_o ill_a a_o tongue_n shall_v go_v unrebuke_v of_o those_o who_o principle_n and_o interest_n give_v they_o the_o liberty_n of_o do_v it_o in_o a_o way_n that_o if_o they_o know_v the_o man_n may_v be_v more_o effectual_a than_o all_o the_o moderation_n and_o reason_n that_o can_v easy_o be_v show_v to_o he_o but_o say_v john_n faldo_n in_o his_o or_o their_o defence_n for_o they_o love_v to_o claw_v one_o another_o compare_v this_o civility_n of_o you_o with_o your_o own_o to_o all_o this_o i_o say_v he_o obtrude_v a_o arrant_a lie_n upon_o our_o very_a sense_n wretched_a scribbler_n how_o idle_a how_o frivolous_a and_o how_o very_o troublesome_n be_v he_o with_o his_o ridiculous_a remark_n very_o well_o and_o be_v this_o the_o great_a blow_n threaten_v i_o fall_v not_o from_o one_o tittle_n of_o it_o it_o be_v all_o true_a all_o his_o due_a i_o can_v not_o well_o have_v speak_v more_o plain_a and_o pertinent_a word_n no_o knave_n puppy_n fool_n rascal_n loggerhead_n cheat_n etc._n etc._n no_o impostor_n false-prophet_n liar_n trapan_n and_o what_o not_o do_v we_o accost_v they_o with_o what!_o must_v not_o we_o fling_v off_o the_o dirt_n they_o cast_v upon_o we_o shall_v it_o be_v account_v well-phrasing_a to_o call_v we_o all_o to_o naught_o and_o our_o earnest_n refuse_v of_o such_o base_a epithet_n and_o severe_a censure_n of_o such_o scurrility_n be_v repute_v rail_a oh_o unreasonable_a man_n ought_v people_n therefore_o to_o be_v kill_v because_o they_o cry_v murder_n or_o lose_v their_o reputation_n because_o they_o be_v zealous_a to_o maintain_v it_o but_o it_o be_v notable_o do_v of_o j._n faldo_n to_o provide_v for_o himself_o who_o ill_a language_n he_o think_v may_v meet_v with_o as_o sharp_a rebuke_n as_o that_o of_o our_o other_o enemy_n have_v do_v nor_o indeed_o will_v we_o let_v slip_v this_o opportunity_n of_o collect_v &_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n after_o what_o manner_n he_o have_v use_v we_o throughout_o his_o discourse_n and_o myself_o in_o particular_a who_o never_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o he_o in_o all_o my_o life_n if_o he_o have_v not_o say_v worse_o of_o we_o with_o who_o we_o have_v have_v so_o little_a if_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o to_o do_v than_o he_o pretend_v i_o have_v against_o those_o man_n that_o give_v such_o provocation_n let_v i_o fall_v in_o the_o good_a opinion_n of_o the_o reader_n and_o the_o just_a witness_n in_o his_o conscience_n condemn_v i_o but_o if_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o unprovoke_v person_n be_v far_o more_o guilty_a than_o he_o can_v possible_o render_v we_o by_o vilify_a expression_n against_o our_o person_n and_o principle_n i_o hope_v and_o expect_v so_o much_o justice_n from_o the_o reader_n as_o that_o the_o innocent_a may_v go_v free_a and_o the_o guilty_a only_o be_v condemn_v that_o j._n faldo_n have_v not_o show_v himself_o that_o man_n of_o moderation_n civility_n or_o religion_n he_o pretend_v himself_o to_o be_v and_o which_o i_o hear_v some_o few_o have_v hitherto_o repute_v let_v the_o follow_v faithful_a and_o true_a collection_n of_o but_o some_o of_o his_o many_o
and_o move_v and_o incline_v to_o purity_n mercy_n righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o god_n we_o deny_v and_o abominate_a that_o rant_a spirit_n that_o will_v charge_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n with_o their_o unholy_a liberty_n god_n spirit_n make_v free_a from_o sin_n not_o to_o sin_n neither_o can_v we_o distinguish_v as_o they_o wicked_o do_v between_o the_o act_n and_o the_o evil_a of_o it_o wherefore_o we_o say_v that_o as_o the_o tree_n be_v know_v and_o denominate_v from_o the_o fruit_n so_o the_o spirit_n by_o their_o motion_n and_o inclination_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n never_o do_v incline_v to_o evil._n so_o we_o renounce_v that_o construction_n of_o their_o esteem_v evil_a no_o evil_a when_o any_o pretend_v to_o be_v lead_v to_o it_o by_o god_n spirit_n for_o that_o be_v not_o the_o way_n and_o method_n of_o his_o spirit_n that_o be_v pure_a and_o holy_a forever_o priest_n the_o quaker_n must_v be_v all_o infallible_a and_o perfect_a if_o they_o have_v such_o a_o light_n quaker_n this_o also_o be_v a_o great_a abuse_n of_o our_o true_a mean_v we_o say_v the_o principle_n be_v pure_a perfect_a unerrable_a in_o itself_o but_o we_o never_o do_v assert_v ourselves_o such_o mere_o because_o it_o be_v in_o we_o by_o no_o mean_n but_o that_o all_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o be_v so_o far_o perfect_a and_o infallible_a and_o no_o jot_n further_o who_o can_v lay_v down_o a_o more_o independent_a doctrine_n upon_o self_n and_o hourly_o depend_v upon_o the_o grace_n or_o gift_n of_o god_n let_v we_o not_o be_v mistake_v nor_o suffer_v for_o these_o thing_n priest_n the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o scripture_n for_o they_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n quaker_n we_o own_o the_o scripture_n as_o they_o own_v themselves_o a_o declaration_n of_o those_o thing_n most_o true_o believe_v give_v forth_o in_o all_o age_n by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n that_o they_o be_v profitable_a for_o read_v for_o exhortation_n for_o reproof_n in_o righteousness_n that_o the_o man_n of_o god_n may_v be_v perfect_o furnish_v they_o be_v the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n we_o believe_v in_o they_o read_v they_o and_o it_o be_v the_o work_n we_o have_v to_o do_v in_o this_o world_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o we_o be_v so_o separate_v from_o it_o and_o the_o earnest_a desire_n of_o our_o soul_n to_o almighty_a god_n that_o we_o may_v witness_v the_o fulfil_v of_o they_o that_o god_n will_n may_v be_v do_v in_o earth_n as_o it_o be_v in_o heaven_n but_o to_o call_v they_o the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o they_o never_o do_v themselves_o but_o which_o they_o peculiar_o denominate_v christ_n by_o in_o reverence_n to_o christ_n alone_o and_o no_o slight_a to_o they_o do_v we_o as_o in_o duty_n and_o reason_n bind_v attribute_v that_o title_n to_o he_o only_o priest_n they_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n quaker_n this_o be_v a_o very_a aspersion_n true_a it_o be_v that_o we_o deny_v the_o scripture_n of_o themselves_o to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o resist_v temptation_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v deny_v they_o to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o do_v it_o when_o we_o allow_v our_o own_o write_n may_v be_v such_o be_v either_o great_a ignorance_n or_o malice_n god_n have_v do_v and_o will_v make_v use_n of_o they_o for_o reproof_n comfort_n and_o edification_n priest_n the_o quaker_n assert_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o immediate_a teacher_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o mean_n now_o to_o be_v use_v quaker_n we_o never_o speak_v such_o language_n but_o perceive_v the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o devil_n in_o this_o thing_n as_o in_o other_o for_o since_o he_o can_v hinder_v the_o exaltation_n of_o the_o spirit_n above_o all_o visible_a instrument_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o its_o motion_n and_o operation_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o the_o great_a suitableness_n of_o it_o to_o the_o gospel_n administration_n he_o will_v spoil_v we_o by_o overdo_v that_o be_v by_o infer_v beyond_o that_o our_o assertion_n will_v allow_v for_o we_o never_o deny_v mean_n but_o to_o this_o day_n from_o the_o beginning_n we_o have_v be_v in_o the_o use_n of_o they_o but_o than_o they_o be_v such_o mean_n as_o be_v use_v in_o the_o life_n and_o power_n of_o god_n and_o not_o in_o and_o from_o man_n mere_a wit_n will_n or_o imitation_n the_o thing_n we_o strike_v at_o strange_a because_o we_o deny_v all_o false_a mean_n or_o mean_v not_o use_v in_o the_o leading_n of_o god_n power_n and_o spirit_n that_o therefore_o we_o must_v deny_v all_o mean_n however_o right_o employ_v behold_v the_o injustice_n of_o our_o enemy_n wherefore_o be_v it_o know_v unto_o all_o that_o evangelical_n mean_v and_o order_n we_o love_v and_o keep_v for_o we_o assemble_v our-selve_n together_o to_o worship_n god_n where_o we_o pray_v in_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o prophesy_v one_o by_o one_o as_o any_o thing_n be_v reveal_v nor_o be_v we_o without_o spiritual_a song_n make_v melody_n in_o our_o heart_n to_o god_n our_o redeemer_n priest_n the_o quaker_n deny_v the_o two_o great_a ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n baptism_n and_o the_o supper_n quaker_n what_o ever_o be_v a_o gospel-ordinance_n we_o own_o and_o practice_v we_o know_v no_o such_o language_n in_o the_o scripture_n as_o in_o the_o calumny_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v true_a those_o two_o practice_n be_v find_v but_o that_o be_v no_o institution_n that_o they_o be_v then_o proper_a we_o believe_v but_o that_o they_o be_v at_o most_o but_o figure_n and_o sign_n you_o acknowledge_v that_o be_v call_v protestant_n now_o prove_v to_o we_o that_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v any_o figure_n or_o sign_n under_o the_o gospel-administration_n when_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o substance_n be_v come_v it_o be_v to_o overthrow_v the_o whole_a dispensation_n and_o to_o make_v his_o come_v of_o none_o effect_v if_o it_o be_v say_v but_o they_o be_v use_v after_o his_o come_v and_o ascension_n too_o i_o answer_v so_o be_v many_o jewish_a ceremony_n not_o easy_o abolish_v if_o any_o say_v but_o christ_n bid_v that_o one_o shall_v be_v do_v till_o he_o come_v very_o well_o and_o he_o that_o say_v so_o tell_v his_o disciple_n that_o he_o will_v come_v to_o they_o some_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n till_o they_o see_v he_o come_v and_o he_o that_o be_v then_o with_o they_o shall_v be_v in_o they_o and_o he_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n till_o he_o drink_v it_o new_a that_o be_v the_o new_a wine_n that_o be_v to_o be_v put_v in_o the_o new_a bottle_n which_o be_v the_o wine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o he_o express_v it_o in_o the_o same_o place_n which_o kingdom_n also_o be_v within_o luk._n 17._o 20._o he_o be_v and_o be_v the_o heavenly_a bread_n that_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o know_v nor_o his_o flesh_n and_o his_o blood_n as_o they_o be_v to_o know_v it_o so_o that_o though_o christ_n be_v come_v to_o end_v all_o sign_n yet_o till_o he_o be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o substance_n to_o the_o soul_n as_o the_o great_a bread_n of_o life_n from_o heaven_n sign_n be_v useful_a to_o show_v forth_o and_o keep_v in_o hand_n especial_o the_o people_n of_o that_o day_n who_o religion_n be_v attend_v with_o a_o multitude_n of_o the_o like_a type_n shadow_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o one_o good_a thing_n and_o substance_n of_o all_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o we_o do_v deny_v they_o that_o be_v too_o hard_a a_o word_n but_o true_o witness_v the_o very_a thing_n they_o signify_v to_o be_v come_v we_o leave_v they_o off_o as_o fulfil_v and_o henceforth_o have_v but_o one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o bread_n and_o but_o one_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o be_v the_o new_a wine_n of_o the_o kingdom_n priest_n the_o quaker_n deny_v christ_n transaction_n at_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o shed_v of_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v beneficial_a unto_o they_o it_o be_v the_o light_n within_o only_o they_o expect_v to_o be_v save_v by_o quaker_n this_o be_v a_o wicked_a suggestion_n against_o we_o we_o do_v say_v that_o the_o appearance_n of_o that_o second_o adam_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n the_o quicken_a spirit_n in_o that_o holy_a body_n prepare_v of_o the_o father_n for_o he_o be_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o world_n who_o have_v fain_o in_o the_o first_o that_o whatever_o he_o then_o do_v both_o live_n &_o die_v have_v a_o great_a influence_n for_o good_a upon_o all_o that_o then_o believe_v and_o have_v still_o for_o all_o that_o now_o believe_v in_o he_o as_o he_o manifest_v himself_o to_o we_o by_o his_o light_n in_o the_o conscience_n for_o we_o do_v affirm_v that_o to_o come_v to_o that_o be_v
quakerism_n a_o new_a nickname_n for_o old_a christianity_n be_v a_o answer_n to_o a_o book_n entitle_v quakerism_n no_o christianity_n subscribe_v by_o j._n faldo_n in_o which_o the_o rise_v doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o abuse_a quaker_n be_v true_o brief_o and_o full_o declare_v and_o vindicated_n from_o the_o false_a charge_n wicked_a insinuation_n and_o utmost_a opposition_n make_v by_o that_o adversary_n with_o a_o key_n open_v the_o true_a mean_v of_o some_o of_o their_o doctrine_n from_o that_o construction_n which_o their_o enemy_n ignorant_o or_o envious_o affirm_v report_n and_o dispute_v to_o be_v they_o by_o one_o of_o they_o and_o a_o sufferer_n with_o they_o in_o all_o their_o suffering_n william_n penn._n behold_v i_o will_v make_v they_o of_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n who_o say_v they_o be_v jew_n and_o be_v not_o but_o do_v lie_v behold_v i_o will_v make_v they_o to_o come_v and_o worship_n before_o thy_o foot_n and_o to_o know_v that_o i_o have_v love_v thou_o rev._n 3._o 9_o print_v anno_fw-la 1672._o the_o author_n to_o the_o reader_n however_o our_o many_o sort_n of_o enemy_n may_v please_v themselves_o with_o their_o brisk_a endeavour_n against_o we_o &_o the_o expectation_n they_o thence_o have_v of_o our_o utter_a overthrow_n especial_o some_o independent_o anabaptist_n and_o socinian_o be_v it_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n professor_n and_o profane_a our_o confidence_n be_v in_o god_n for_o who_o holy_a truth_n sake_n we_o be_v as_o man_n kill_v all_o the_o day_n long_o and_o it_o be_v our_o persuasion_n that_o many_o thousand_o in_o these_o nation_n have_v that_o sense_n of_o we_o in_o their_o own_o conscience_n which_o it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o the_o utmost_a power_n or_o artisice_n of_o our_o angry_a adversary_n to_o extinguish_v as_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n we_o matter_n not_o their_o flourish_n number_n threat_n or_o force_v though_o gog_n and_o magog_n be_v combine_v to_o seek_v our_o ruin_n god_n that_o make_v the_o heaven_n and_o the_o earth_n the_o sea_n and_o fountain_n of_o water_n have_v they_o all_o in_o derision_n and_o will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o assist_v we_o otherwise_o fore-lorn_a upon_o earth_n in_o this_o juncture_n of_o close_a attack_z we_o wait_v on_o he_o with_o that_o divine_a courage_n wisdom_n and_o patience_n which_o may_v enable_v we_o to_o surmount_v the_o difficulty_n of_o the_o work_n and_o through_o the_o tribulation_n of_o our_o day_n bring_v we_o to_o the_o recompense_n of_o that_o peace_n which_o be_v eternal_a and_o indeed_o this_o be_v our_o joy_n above_o all_o worldly_a thing_n that_o the_o lord_n be_v our_o light_n and_o our_o salvation_n we_o know_v it_o we_o experience_v it_o therefore_o who_o shall_v we_o fear_v though_o all_o sect_n seem_v meet_v in_o one_o as_o a_o mighty_a man_n of_o war_n to_o our_o overthrow_n the_o despise_a stripling_n by_o this_o great_a goliath_n have_v a_o sling_n and_o a_o stone_n that_o however_o contemptible_a yet_o come_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v this_o giant_n be_v head_n a_o victim_n to_o his_o faith_n we_o know_v in_o who_o we_o have_v believe_v and_o can_v be_v cudgel_v jeer_v rail_v or_o smooth_v out_o of_o our_o most_o holy_a faith_n who_o have_v god_n for_o its_o father_n and_o victory_n for_o its_o offspring_n a_o birth_n unknown_a to_o the_o bawl_a pharisee_n of_o the_o age_n nor_o can_v any_o but_o a_o conqueror_n inherit_v reader_n their_o cry_n for_o scripture_n christ_n fundamental_o and_o the_o like_a be_v mere_a pretence_n that_o make_v but_o up_o a_o cloak_n to_o cover_v the_o avaricious_a and_o ambitious_a end_n of_o those_o lead_a man_n in_o every_o party_n that_o as_o deep_o and_o vigorous_o prosecute_v our_o ruin_n as_o a_o jew_n do_v riches_n but_o the_o reason_n be_v know_v to_o almighty_a god_n because_o the_o quaker_n have_v be_v teach_v that_o inward_a heavenly_a straight_a and_o narrow_a way_n to_o life_n by_o a_o internal_a live_a teacher_n they_o will_v say_v they_o srustrate_v all_o hope_n of_o further_a advantage_n the_o ignorance_n of_o people_n in_o the_o thing_n of_o god_n have_v hitherto_o benefit_v we_o withal_o by_o their_o most_o vehement_a declaration_n to_o the_o world_n that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o child_n of_o god_n who_o be_v not_o beget_v of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v so_o beget_v but_o by_o the_o internal_a operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o wash_v cleanse_v and_o inlve_v the_o mind_n to_o god-ward_o that_o this_o be_v the_o deep_a and_o most_o excellent_a end_n for_o which_o man_n be_v make_v the_o law_n be_v give_v prophet_n raise_v and_o christ_n come_v live_v die_v rose_n and_o ascend_v that_o who_o know_v he_o not_o thus_o let_v into_o the_o conscience_n in_o order_n to_o purge_v it_o from_o dead_a work_n by_o the_o destruction_n of_o that_o power_n which_o product_v they_o to_o lead_v captivity_n captive_a and_o reign_v as_o king_n lord_n judge_n and_o lawgiver_n be_v enemy_n to_o the_o cross_n of_o christ_n and_o be_v at_o best_a but_o carnal_a historical_a and_o mere_o outside_n christian_n and_o this_o we_o stand_v by_o and_o they_o know_v full_a well_o with_o the_o fatal_a consequence_n to_o their_o design_n that_o will_v attend_v the_o universal_a reception_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o doctrine_n they_o seek_v to_o divert_v the_o mind_n of_o tender_a and_o inquire_a people_n by_o all_o the_o hideous_a devilish_a falsity_n satan_n utmost_a interest_n can_v furnish_v they_o withal_o deform_v we_o with_o what_o mire_n they_o can_v either_o borrow_v or_o invent_v hope_v by_o such_o besmeering_n to_o make_v the_o dog_n fasten_v we_o for_o some_o monstrous_a beast_n and_o choose_v rather_o to_o solemnize_v our_o funeral_n with_o the_o merriment_n of_o the_o vulgar_a then_o suffer_v they_o to_o know_v we_o true_o as_o we_o be_v lest_o their_o sober_a conscience_n shall_v inquire_v or_o be_v touch_v with_o any_o the_o least_o pity_n for_o our_o so_o hard_o deal_v at_o their_o cruel_a hand_n well!_o but_o for_o your_o sake_n o_o impartial_a people_n be_o i_o this_o time_n engage_v in_o spirit_n to_o concern_v myself_o otherwise_o against_o my_o will_n to_o take_v a_o angry_a scoff_v independent_a priest_n in_o hand_n a_o man_n i_o know_v not_o but_o by_o his_o book_n and_o certain_o a_o ignorant_a malicious_n and_o scurrilous_a one_o too_o i_o perceive_v how_o unknown_a soever_o he_o be_v to_o i_o i_o be_o not_o to_o he_o and_o he_o have_v take_v great_a care_n to_o tell_v i_o so_o but_o my_o own_o concern_v will_v have_v suggest_v silence_n to_o i_o for_o a_o answer_n to_o his_o uncivil_a reflection_n for_o argument_n i_o can_v call_v they_o have_v not_o my_o earnest_n desire_v be_v for_o the_o vindication_n of_o that_o truth_n live_v upon_o all_o occasion_n offer_v which_o the_o grave_n will_v prevent_v i_o do_v it_o be_v my_o satisfaction_n god_n have_v make_v it_o my_o lot_n and_o that_o of_o suffer_v from_o detractor_n i_o esteem_v not_o the_o least_o part_n of_o my_o crown_n for_o who_o holy_a service_n he_o be_v my_o witness_n i_o have_v long_o since_o cheerful_o sacrifice_v my_o all_o of_o contentment_n in_o this_o world_n and_o yet_o be_o not_o without_o a_o share_n from_o his_o peculiar_a providence_n but_o let_v we_o see_v if_o the_o quaker_n be_v those_o miserable_o delude_v wretch_n this_o taunt_a priest_n will_v represent_v we_o who_o trifle_a quirk_n show_v the_o emptiness_n of_o the_o head_n and_o airiness_n of_o the_o mind_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v if_o we_o be_v what_o he_o assert_n we_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o man_n by_o how_o much_o we_o pretend_v to_o great_a thing_n but_o if_o it_o shall_v appear_v we_o be_v scriptural_o orthodox_n in_o some_o of_o those_o very_a point_n for_o which_o he_o represent_v we_o heterodox_n and_o mistake_v by_o he_o in_o the_o rest_n i_o hope_v it_o will_v not_o be_v without_o good_a reason_n that_o i_o have_v entituld_v this_o short_a discourse_n quakerism_n a_o new_a nickname_n for_o old_a christianity_n reader_n the_o whole_a of_o what_o i_o have_v to_o desire_v from_o thou_o be_v a_o impartial_a mind_n in_o the_o perusal_n of_o this_o defence_n and_o just_a explanation_n of_o our_o so_o much_o misrepresent_v faith_n and_o doctrine_n with_o that_o we_o dare_v adventure_v our_o cause_n and_o without_o it_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n so_o clear_a that_o prejudice_n may_v not_o question_v it_o let_v not_o the_o multitude_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v a_o argument_n against_o our_o cause_n their_o revile_v ought_v not_o to_o pass_v for_o reason_n nor_o noise_n for_o conquest_n with_o god_n almighty_a and_o his_o holy_a witness_n in_o thy_o conscience_n do_v i_o leave_v the_o issue_n of_o this_o endeavour_n be_v serious_a be_v considerate_a farewell_o thy_o friend_n very_o ready_a to_o
with_o a_o more_o glorious_a manifestation_n of_o the_o same_o divine_a power_n purity_n truth_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n then_o former_a age_n be_v either_o capable_a of_o or_o attend_v with_o to_o exclude_v then_o all_o antecedent_n time_n from_o any_o share_n in_o christianity_n be_v both_o weak_a and_o cruel_a since_o it_o plain_o shut_v they_o out_o of_o all_o hope_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n for_o if_o no_o name_n be_v give_v but_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o whole_a heaven_n by_o which_o man_n can_v be_v save_v then_o either_o christ_n be_v always_o in_o some_o measure_n or_o other_o a_o saviour_n and_o such_o as_o be_v save_v in_o some_o degree_n or_o other_o christian_n or_o there_o be_v one_o saviour_n before_o christ_n outward_a come_n and_o another_o since_o or_o last_o all_o that_o be_v antecedent_n to_o that_o appearance_n be_v damn_v §_o 6._o i_o appeal_v then_o to_o the_o conscience_n and_o understanding_n of_o all_o impartial_a people_n if_o our_o belief_n be_v not_o the_o most_o just_a merciful_a and_o true_a that_o however_o it_o please_v god_n to_o send_v his_o son_n a_o light_n into_o the_o world_n at_o that_o time_n more_o eminent_o than_o before_o yet_o that_o he_o be_v so_o far_o spiritual_o manifest_v in_o all_o age_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n nigh_o in_o the_o heart_n and_o great_a commandment_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o man_n as_o who_o believe_v and_o obey_v obtain_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n this_o be_v clear_a for_o if_o no_o man_n can_v ever_o see_v or_o know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o then_o because_o many_o of_o the_o holy_a ancient_n both_v spiritual_o see_v and_o know_v god_n otherwise_o they_o can_v never_o be_v save_v it_o follow_v that_o christ_n do_v in_o all_o age_n reveal_v god_n who_o be_v light_n and_o that_o it_o be_v light_n alone_o which_o can_v reveal_v or_o manifest_a it_o be_v as_o a_o light_n within_o that_o he_o communicate_v unto_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n which_o be_v within_o man_n the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o pure_a god_n whatever_o may_v be_v know_v of_o god_n be_v manifest_a within_o man_n for_o god_n have_v show_v it_o unto_o he_o so_o that_o the_o contradiction_n and_o error_n of_o the_o man_n definition_n of_o christianity_n be_v evident_a §_o 7._o but_o yet_o a_o little_a further_o he_o plain_o heathenizes_n that_o notable_a christian_a passage_n of_o the_o refuse_v it_o all_o privilege_n within_o the_o bound_n of_o apostle_n christianity_n viz._n whatsoever_o thing_n be_v true_a honest_a just_a pure_a lovely_a of_o good_a report_n 4._o if_o there_o be_v any_o virtue_n if_o there_o be_v any_o praise_n think_v on_o these_o thing_n now_o if_o this_o religious_a chemist_n shall_v once_o extract_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v honest_a just_a pure_a lovely_a and_o of_o good_a report_n from_o christianity_n which_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o sum_n of_o what_o he_o have_v be_v write_v unless_o it_o be_v not_o a_o christian_a epistle_n and_o therefore_o end_v with_o a_o final_o my_o brethren_n tell_v i_o o_o sober_a reader_n what_o a_o kind_n of_o christianity_n there_o will_v be_v in_o the_o world_n o_o monstruous_a impiety_n be_v this_o man_n fit_a to_o write_v of_o christianity_n that_o place_v it_o beneath_o the_o low_a step_n of_o purity_n make_v manifest_a difference_n betwixt_o be_v a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o a_o christian_a true_o the_o outward_a history_n of_o christ_n exceed_a love_n to_o mankind_n deserve_v all_o humble_a and_o reverend_a credit_n as_o a_o godly_a tradition_n and_o it_o shall_v forever_o bind_v man_n to_o receive_v and_o fear_v and_o worship_v he_o yet_o i_o bold_o affirm_v that_o though_o the_o manifestation_n be_v clear_a yet_o salvation_n be_v salvation_n and_o a_o child_n of_o god_n a_o child_n of_o god_n in_o all_o age_n for_o what_o be_v it_o but_o to_o say_v that_o pure_a religion_n and_o undefiled_a which_o be_v to_o keep_v ourselves_o unspotted_a from_o the_o world_n belong_v not_o strict_o to_o the_o christian_a but_o jewish_a or_o pagan_a religion_n and_o that_o james_n be_v but_o a_o moral_a man_n in_o the_o matter_n and_o not_o write_v on_o a_o christian_a subject_n what_o a_o empty_a trunk_n a_o vox_fw-la &_o praeterea_fw-la nihil_fw-la a_o sound_a brass_n and_o tinkle_a cymbal_n will_v this_o man_n make_v of_o true_a christianity_n yet_o thus_o far_o we_o may_v force_v he_o to_o speak_v truth_n though_o in_o double_a contradiction_n to_o himself_o that_o since_o christianity_n take_v in_o all_o that_o be_v worthy_a in_o all_o age_n not_o as_o alien_n then_o but_o relate_v to_o herself_o something_a of_o the_o nature_n of_o true_a christianity_n be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o that_o more_o visible_a and_o glorious_a manifestation_n of_o it_o unless_o christianity_n be_v suppose_v to_o take_v into_o itself_o what_o be_v not_o of_o its_o own_o nature_n thus_o be_v christ_n the_o rock_n the_o ancient_n build_v on_o before_o abraham_n be_v who_o day_n he_o have_v a_o sight_n and_o sense_n of_o and_o from_o it_o exult_v great_o §_o 8._o christianity_n then_o be_v not_o a_o historical_a belief_n of_o the_o exterior_a act_n the_o true_a christ_n do_v in_o that_o bodily_a appearance_n which_o be_v but_o historical_a christianity_n as_o our_o adversary_n weak_o argue_v for_o that_o be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o since_o christianity_n be_v that_o which_o 4._o bring_v to_o god_n which_o thousand_o that_o believe_v the_o other_o will_v never_o arrive_v at_o but_o a_o firm_a belief_n in_o he_o that_o so_o appear_v live_v die_v rose_n and_o ascend_v both_o as_o testify_v of_o in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n and_o more_o especial_o as_o he_o break_v in_o upon_o the_o soul_n by_o his_o divine_a discovery_n as_o the_o true_a light_n enlighten_v every_o man_n this_o i_o call_v christianity_n and_o that_o man_n be_v a_o child_n of_o light_n who_o obey_v that_o light_n a_o true_a christian_a who_o be_v christ-like_a a_o child_n of_o god_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o promise_n who_o be_v inward_o renew_v and_o beget_v anew_o of_o the_o incorruptible_a seed_n and_o word_n of_o god_n for_o those_o who_o be_v christian_n of_o old_a be_v such_o as_o come_v to_o know_v christ_n no_o more_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o as_o the_o second_o adam_n the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n the_o quicken_a spirit_n who_o say_v i_o be_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n real_o witness_v he_o to_o be_v that_o in_o themselves_o wherefore_o they_o believe_v and_o upon_o repentance_n receive_v remission_n of_o sin_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o i_o do_v affirm_v that_o christianity_n stand_v in_o the_o manifestation_n of_o a_o measure_n of_o that_o righteous_a power_n wisdom_n truth_n and_o life_n in_o the_o soul_n which_o appear_v so_o large_o and_o glorious_o in_o that_o body_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o work_v repentance_n then_o give_v remission_n so_o renew_v redeem_v and_o final_o save_v and_o who_o come_v to_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o that_o heavenly_a treasure_n in_o their_o mortal_a body_n and_o to_o improve_v it_o as_o good_a steward_n be_v possessor_n of_o true_a christianity_n and_o therefore_o right_a christian_n the_o distinction_n betwixt_o moral_a and_o christian_n the_o make_v holy_a life_n legal_a and_o faith_n in_o the_o history_n of_o christ_n outward_a christianity_n manifestation_n have_v be_v a_o deadly_a poison_n these_o latter_a age_n have_v be_v infect_v with_o to_o the_o destruction_n of_o godly_a live_n and_o apostatise_v of_o those_o church_n in_o who_o there_o may_v once_o have_v be_v beget_v some_o earnest_n live_v thirst_n after_o the_o inward_a life_n of_o righteousness_n §_o 9_o by_o this_o i_o think_v it_o may_v be_v pretty_a well_o know_v what_o we_o mean_v by_o christianity_n and_o a_o true_a christian_a how_o far_o this_o will_v agree_v with_o his_o definition_n of_o quakerism_n and_o a_o quaker_n i_o will_v proceed_v to_o examine_v quakerism_n be_v a_o heap_n of_o tenet_n with_o the_o 3_o usurp_a name_n of_o true_a christian_a principle_n which_o be_v yet_o real_o no_o such_o thing_n but_o subvert_v both_o foundation_n and_o fabric_n of_o true_a christianity_n and_o i_o call_v he_o a_o quaker_n that_o profess_v the_o light_n within_o every_o man_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o saviour_n and_o very_a god_n so_o that_o then_o i_o say_v quakerism_n be_v no_o christianity_n §_o 10._o indeed_o if_o quakerism_n respect_v we_o be_v this_o i_o will_v say_v so_o too_o but_o because_o it_o be_v just_o a_o stranger_n to_o any_o such_o imputation_n i_o right_o fasten_v that_o of_o ignorance_n or_o great_a malice_n upon_o our_o adversary_n i_o have_v already_o express_v our_o judgement_n of_o christianity_n which_o i_o suppose_v to_o be_v the_o quakerism_n strike_v at_o what_o ever_o may_v be_v pretend_v at_o
they_o resist_v the_o grace_n grieve_v the_o spirit_n turn_v from_o the_o way_n of_o the_o light_n and_o be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o death_n god_n have_v be_v frequent_o please_v to_o move_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o obedient_a to_o visit_v the_o rebellious_a that_o the_o inward_a strive_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n may_v be_v the_o more_o efficacious_a by_o its_o strive_n through_o some_o outward_a instrument_n but_o still_o it_o be_v the_o same_o light_n grace_n or_o spirit_n of_o god_n nor_o be_v the_o light_n within_o any_o whit_n the_o more_o insufficient_a to_o reclaim_v the_o rebellious_a if_o mind_v for_o it_o be_v the_o same_o light_n with_o that_o which_o move_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o obedient_a to_o bear_v record_n for_o god_n against_o their_o ungodly_a deed_n only_a man_n mind_n be_v far_o stray_v from_o that_o holy_a light_n or_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o go_v abroad_o into_o the_o wide_a world_n of_o lust_n and_o vanity_n it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o visit_v mankind_n so_o degenerate_v by_o those_o who_o have_v be_v obedient_a child_n to_o the_o end_v they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o gain_v to_o a_o subjection_n unto_o the_o holy_a light_n in_o themselves_o so_o that_o all_o conviction_n and_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o light_n grace_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n whether_o immediate_o in_o the_o creature_n or_o mediate_o by_o any_o instrument_n only_o take_v this_o by_o the_o way_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v efficacious_a mediate_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v simple_o of_o another_o man_n measure_n of_o light_n or_o grace_n but_o in_o conjunction_n with_o what_o god_n have_v give_v and_o may_v be_v at_o work_n in_o the_o party_n convict_v and_o convert_v for_o every_o mediate_v conviction_n give_v and_o addition_n of_o life_n and_o strength_n to_o the_o immediate_a conviction_n that_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o operation_n of_o that_o so_o long_o neglect_v measure_n of_o light_n grace_n or_o truth_n in_o the_o particular_a conscience_n we_o appeal_v then_o to_o every_o impartial_a person_n that_o read_v we_o if_o we_o own_v not_o the_o scripture_n in_o that_o very_a sense_n he_o will_v have_v people_n believe_v that_o we_o deny_v they_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n may_v and_o do_v speak_v to_o people_n through_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n and_o apostle_n which_o be_v common_o call_v scripture_n and_o consequent_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n by_o which_o we_o may_v come_v to_o know_v god_n christ_n and_o ourselves_o so_o often_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v the_o eternal_a god_n to_o reach_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n by_o any_o of_o those_o truth_n therein_o declare_v of_o chap._n viii_o his_o charge_n of_o our_o deny_v the_o scripture_n any_o mean_n by_o which_o god_n do_v enable_v man_n to_o resist_v temptation_n and_o that_o we_o say_v they_o be_v dangerous_a to_o be_v read_v reject_v his_o proof_n lame_a the_o scripture_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v a_o mean_n etc._n etc._n the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o they_o divine_a no_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n but_o upon_o experience_n it_o do_v not_o destroy_v faith_n w._n penn_n word_n safe_a and_o sound_a the_o priest_n a_o mere_a shuffler_n learn_v a_o servant_n to_o truth_n christ_n the_o word_n of_o god_n faith_n by_o our_o adversary_n prefer_v before_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v read_v believe_v and_o obey_v §_o 1._o he_o further_o charge_v we_o with_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n and_o that_o we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v dangerous_a to_o be_v read_v for_o proof_n 113._o of_o which_o he_o quote_v a_o book_n call_v love_n to_o the_o lose_a and_o i_o entitle_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n the_o first_o be_v this_o for_o those_o only_o be_v child_n of_o god_n who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n to_o who_o they_o who_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o letter_n be_v enemy_n from_o whence_o he_o conclude_v that_o we_o account_v it_o a_o very_a dangerous_a thing_n to_o read_v the_o scripture_n now_o if_o this_o passage_n have_v any_o relation_n to_o his_o charge_n or_o conclusion_n no_o man_n ever_o see_v the_o like_a the_o whole_a scope_n of_o which_o be_v but_o this_o that_o there_o be_v child_n of_o the_o fleshly_a literal_a and_o historical_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o religion_n who_o be_v stranger_n to_o and_o therefore_o persecutor_n of_o the_o child_n bear_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o in_o all_o age_n there_o have_v be_v more_o or_o less_o of_o this_o among_o inward_a and_o outward_a jew_n and_o christian_n and_o let_v j._n faldo_n deny_v it_o if_o he_o dare_v how_o wicked_a then_o be_v he_o to_o extort_v indeed_o invent_v a_o inference_n so_o foreign_a to_o the_o matter_n and_o then_o charge_v it_o upon_o the_o quaker_n in_o general_a and_o as_o if_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o that_o passage_n in_o particular_a which_o can_v no_o way_n be_v concern_v in_o any_o such_o unrighteous_a doctrine_n i_o perceive_v it_o be_v as_o impossible_a for_o our_o adversary_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n against_o we_o without_o they_o have_v the_o make_v of_o our_o consequence_n as_o we_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v they_o misshapen_v enough_o by_o that_o time_n they_o get_v clear_a of_o their_o hand_n but_o bless_v be_v the_o name_n of_o our_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o a_o understanding_n and_o boldness_n both_o to_o search_v the_o reins_o of_o our_o enemy_n cause_n and_o defend_v he_o which_o he_o have_v put_v into_o our_o hand_n in_o this_o our_o day_n §_o 2._o but_o hear_v he_o further_o if_o it_o may_v be_v worth_a while_n that_o this_o abominable_a tenet_n be_v the_o quaker_n take_v one_o instance_n more_o out_o of_o their_o famous_a author_n w._n p._n or_o william_n penn._n but_o i_o will_v assure_v they_o they_o shall_v grope_v in_o the_o dark_a till_o they_o come_v into_o the_o daily_a obedience_n of_o the_o light_n and_o there_o rest_v content_v to_o know_v only_o as_o they_o experience_n and_o not_o from_o a_o raven_a comprehend_v brain_n that_o will_v in_o its_o unregenerate_v state_n grasp_v at_o the_o clear_a mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n into_o which_o fleshly_a comprehension_n and_o notion_n can_v never_o enter_v but_o all_o must_v be_v as_o unlearned_a from_o their_o first_o birth_n education_n and_o traditional_a read_v knowledge_n as_o he_o be_v unman_v that_o be_v again_o become_v a_o little_a child_n before_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n work_n come_v to_o be_v make_v know_v spir._n truth_n vind._n p._n 23._o upon_o which_o hear_v his_o comment_n that_o w._n p._n of_o all_o other_o shall_v talk_v at_o this_o rate_n be_v most_o ridiculous_a what!_o know_v only_o as_o they_o experience_n know_v what_o god_n be_v no_o far_o than_o they_o experience_v can_v we_o experience_v his_o omnipotency_n what!_o know_v the_o death_n of_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o judge_v of_o all_o man_n by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n only_o by_o experience_n where_o be_v faith_n all_o the_o while_n if_o none_o but_o believer_n be_v saint_n such_o as_o w._n p._n be_v profess_o none_o if_o reader_n we_o be_v get_v beside_o the_o matter_n charge_v against_o the_o quaker_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o deny_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v any_o mean_n whereby_o to_o resist_v temptation_n our_o wander_a adversary_n who_o lead_v i_o thither_o be_v only_o to_o be_v blame_v but_o since_o i_o be_o here_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o clear_v the_o truth_n and_o myself_o before_o we_o return_v to_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n it_o can_v be_v so_o ridiculous_a in_o w._n p._n to_o assert_v the_o impossibility_n of_o any_o man_n be_v know_v god_n or_o the_o thing_n belong_v to_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n but_o by_o experience_n or_o as_o god_n have_v be_v please_v by_o the_o inspiration_n or_o illumination_n of_o his_o light_n or_o spirit_n to_o demonstrate_v or_o discover_v unto_o mankind_n as_o it_o be_v impious_a and_o antichristian_a in_o j._n faldo_n to_o assert_v the_o right_a knowledge_n of_o god_n obtainable_a any_o other_o way_n then_o by_o experience_n and_o this_o reader_n choke_v j._n faldo_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o partner_n more_o than_o they_o be_v willing_a their_o follower_n shall_v know_v who_o for_o all_o their_o cry_n against_o we_o as_o overturner_n of_o a_o gospel_n and_o establisher_n of_o a_o legal_a righteousness_n dread_v the_o consequence_n of_o have_v their_o own_o strive_n run_n willing_n and_o literal_a knowledge_n lay_v aside_o in_o which_o their_o life_n faith_n worship_n and_o whole_a religion_n most_o stand_v and_o of_o be_v reduce_v to_o the_o very_a alphabet_n of_o inward_a and_o experimental_a religion_n where_o the_o righteous_a judgement_n of_o
god_n be_v know_v for_o sin_n which_o they_o shake_v off_o on_o another_o mistake_v account_v and_o in_o this_o mystery_n the_o devil_n work_v most_o subtle_o and_o vigorous_o against_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n within_o and_o its_o true_a and_o holy_a birth_n §_o 3._o but_o say_v he_o how_o know_v god_n omnipotency_n experimental_o very_o well_o say_v i_o against_o the_o folly_n of_o this_o cavil_v priest_n experience_n be_v demonstration_n and_o the_o world_n without_o and_o the_o redemption_n i_o know_v within_o which_o no_o power_n but_o what_o be_v almighty_a can_v ever_o have_v effect_v make_v up_o that_o demonstration_n which_o be_v that_o experience_n therefore_o i_o only_o know_v god_n omnipotency_n by_o experience_n §_o 4._o but_o be_v it_o thus_o that_o you_o know_v christ_n die_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o judgement_n and_o a_o immortality_n i_o answer_v not_o altogether_o thus_o one_o part_n be_v matter_n of_o story_n and_o be_v believe_v first_o historical_o upon_o the_o credit_n of_o history_n and_o then_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o inward_a conviction_n too_o the_o other_o be_v knowable_a only_o upon_o experience_n for_o we_o feel_v in_o ourselves_o reward_v and_o punishment_n for_o good_a and_o evil_a in_o this_o life_n and_o receive_v they_o as_o earnest_n of_o what_o will_v attend_v mankind_n in_o the_o next_o and_o we_o have_v a_o inward_a sense_n of_o a_o never_o die_a life_n which_o as_o we_o be_v gather_v into_o it_o and_o grow_v up_o in_o it_o we_o shall_v inherit_v eternal_a felicity_n and_o as_o there_o be_v a_o err_v from_o that_o holy_a spirit_n of_o life_n the_o wage_n of_o such_o rebellion_n will_v be_v the_o direful_a portion_n of_o death_n and_o misery_n to_o every_o soul_n forever_o §_o 5._o nor_o do_v this_o clash_n with_o faith_n whatever_o the_o priest_n will_v suggest_v for_o faith_n be_v a_o believe_v in_o or_o rely_v upon_o god_n with_o respect_n to_o a_o further_a knowledge_n and_o enjoyment_n of_o he_o which_o no_o way_n impugn_v or_o withstand_v a_o knowledge_n of_o god_n upon_o experience_n so_o far_o as_o man_n do_v experience_n wherein_o they_o simple_o believe_v they_o do_v not_o yet_o so_o perfect_o experience_n which_o end_v faith_n yet_o it_o abide_v certain_a that_o when_o they_o do_v experience_n that_o further_a revelation_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o mercy_n and_o riches_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n as_o the_o end_n of_o their_o faith_n then_o and_o not_o before_o they_o may_v be_v say_v to_o know_v those_o thing_n why_o then_o shall_v we_o be_v deny_v to_o conclude_v and_o that_o most_o right_o that_o to_o know_v and_o to_o experience_n be_v equivalent_a term_n no_o knowledge_n without_o experience_n no_o experience_n without_o knowledge_n and_o though_o man_n may_v believe_v in_o a_o further_a enjoyment_n of_o what_o they_o now_o have_v but_o a_o earnest_a of_o yet_o that_o as_o such_o they_o know_v not_o consequent_o they_o experience_v it_o not_o and_o so_o much_o this_o insolent_a vilifier_n of_o that_o serious_a expression_n confess_v to_o we_o and_o dispute_v for_o as_o he_o think_v against_o us_o when_o he_o say_v where_o be_v faith_n all_o the_o while_n and_o if_o none_o but_o believer_n be_v saint_n such_o as_o w._n p._n be_v profess_o none_o since_o than_o my_o affirm_v no_o knowledge_n of_o god_n without_o experience_n strike_v not_o at_o faith_n because_o faith_n say_v our_o adversary_n be_v not_o a_o clear_a know_v but_o believe_v or_o rely_v upon_o god_n as_o to_o thing_n not_o yet_o clear_o know_v and_o enjoy_v what_o have_v the_o man_n be_v a_o do_v all_o the_o while_n but_o here_o be_v his_o shameful_a mistake_n and_o contradiction_n that_o know_v and_o believe_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o this_o i_o will_v make_v appear_v from_o his_o own_o word_n and_o a_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o §_o 6._o he_o quarrel_v my_o affirm_v all_o knowledge_n to_o rest_v upon_o experience_n and_o oppose_v to_o it_o this_o question_n can_v we_o experience_v his_o omnipotency_n as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v yet_o we_o know_v it_o else_o he_o query_n impertinent_o if_o so_o then_o that_o god_n omnipotency_n may_v be_v know_v and_o not_o experience_v the_o purport_n of_o his_o query_n it_o must_v be_v only_o by_o faith_n and_o if_o by_o faith_n than_o a_o man_n may_v certain_o know_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v what_o it_o be_v and_o yet_o at_o the_o same_o time_n only_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v so_o which_o he_o as_o earnest_o withstand_v when_o he_o ask_v where_o be_v faith_n all_o the_o while_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v then_o say_v be_v resolve_v whether_o that_o man_n suppose_v j._n faldo_n who_o say_v that_o know_v and_o believe_v be_v one_o and_o know_v and_o experience_v be_v contrary_n be_v more_o ridiculous_a or_o w._n p._n who_o affirm_v that_o faith_n which_o strict_o take_v be_v but_o a_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o yet_o clear_o see_v experience_v or_o know_v and_o know_v be_v not_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o that_o experience_n and_o know_v can_v never_o be_v contrary_n §_o 7._o i_o will_v advise_v this_o priest_n to_o be_v less_o conceit_v and_o better_o ground_v the_o next_o time_n he_o have_v to_o do_v with_o we_o for_o even_o in_o those_o place_n where_o he_o seem_v most_o insult_a he_o appear_v most_o weak_a reader_n what_o we_o experience_n we_o know_v and_o from_o hence_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v that_o fullness_n to_o be_v in_o god_n which_o we_o can_v never_o comprehensive_o know_v so_o that_o our_o know_v god_n from_o experience_n do_v not_o weaken_v faith_n but_o as_o enjoyment_n be_v the_o end_n of_o faith_n so_o from_o thence_o great_a encouragement_n be_v to_o be_v take_v to_o press_v on_o from_o faith_n to_o faith_n till_o there_o be_v a_o arrive_v at_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o 13._o stature_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n but_o he_o leave_v not_o off_o here_o §_o 8._o i_o shall_v not_o comment_v on_o his_o raven_a comprehend_v brain_n a_o most_o affect_a pharisee_n among_o the_o quaker_n nor_o his_o clear_a mystery_n as_o clear_v a_o contradiction_n as_o it_o be_v nor_o fleshly_a comprehension_n as_o much_o untruth_n and_o nonsense_n as_o according_a to_o their_o mean_v of_o it_o it_o comprehend_v for_o i_o have_v not_o room_n to_o spread_v all_o his_o rubbish_n i_o wonder_v not_o at_o his_o course_n usage_n of_o i_o it_o be_v like_o a_o man_n of_o his_o breed_n fury_n and_o profession_n there_o be_v abundant_o more_o yet_o behind_o some_o of_o which_o will_v be_v observe_v in_o a_o more_o proper_a place_n but_o to_o reply_v raven_v be_v a_o most_o proper_a word_n and_o due_a to_o j._n faldo_n with_o his_o whole_a tribe_n of_o priest_n and_o if_o he_o will_v rave_v too_o some_o few_o more_o moderate_a one_o except_v for_o we_o common_o understand_v by_o a_o ravenous_a dog_n one_o that_o be_v greedy_a sharp-set_a that_o hunt_v hard_a for_o prey_n that_o snatch_v and_o ketche_n at_o every_o thing_n it_o like_v or_o may_v answer_v his_o hungry_a appetite_n now_o whether_o this_o may_v relate_v to_o that_o greedy_a pursuit_n of_o the_o priest_n after_o hire_n the_o basin_n the_o box_n the_o purse_n or_o that_o insatiable_a thirst_n they_o have_v after_o knowledge_n of_o those_o religious_a matter_n which_o be_v the_o dear-bought_a experience_n of_o ancient_a saint_n whilst_o stranger_n to_o the_o fiery_a and_o refine_v judgement_n of_o the_o lord_n through_o which_o alone_a it_o be_v obtain_v certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o word_n be_v most_o apt_o use_v by_o the_o quaker_n against_o that_o ravenous_a generation_n §_o 9_o comprehend_v brain_n be_v compass_v or_o master_v of_o any_o thing_n in_o the_o understanding_n and_o where_o people_n be_v more_o studious_a to_o fill_v their_o head_n with_o knowledge_n then_o to_o adorn_v their_o heart_n with_o righteousness_n we_o use_v those_o word_n in_o a_o way_n of_o reproof_n since_o have_v learn_v of_o god_n what_o we_o know_v of_o he_o through_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o light_n in_o our_o conscience_n it_o be_v our_o testimony_n and_o our_o work_n in_o the_o world_n to_o beat_v down_o that_o thirst_v spirit_n after_o much_o head-knowledge_n and_o press_v all_o to_o the_o continual_a observance_n of_o a_o humble_a and_o constant_a obedience_n to_o the_o 27._o grace_n of_o god_n manifest_v in_o their_o heart_n that_o teach_v to_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n and_o worldy_a lust_n and_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godlikely_a in_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n which_o be_v the_o undefiled_a religion_n nor_o his_o clear_a mystery_n as_o clear_v a_o contradiction_n as_o it_o be_v it_o be_v not_o clear_a but_o clean_o in_o my_o copy_n which_o i_o suppose_v i_o can_v produce_v and_o have_v be_v so_o correct_v by_o i_o ingenuous_a man_n
mere_a imitation_n of_o real_a thing_n as_o i_o have_v be_v credible_o tell_v we_o know_v not_o but_o our_o ignorance_n of_o a_o inward_a sense_n may_v render_v we_o very_o fit_a to_o judge_v in_o favour_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o his_o puppet-play_n doctrine_n till_o when_o we_o leave_v imitate_v j._n faldo_n and_o the_o puppet_n together_o who_o alike_o fained_o represent_v life_n power_n and_o spirit_n but_o in_o reality_n be_v empty_a sound_n and_o mere_a wind_n rattle_v through_o lifeless_a trunk_n chap._n xiii_o but_o we_o deny_v preach_v say_v he_o his_o disingenuity_n in_o state_v our_o principle_n we_o hold_v and_o practice_v true_a gospel-preaching_a no_o difference_n between_o what_o the_o light_n teach_v and_o the_o scripture_n our_o gospel_n be_v peace_n our_o adversary_n be_v war_n etc._n etc._n true_a preach_a convert_n our_o adversary_n not_o §_o 1._o another_o of_o those_o ordinance_n he_o false_o affirm_v we_o to_o deny_v be_v preach_v of_o which_o he_o speak_v thus_o they_o will_v allow_v a_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v and_o that_o must_v be_v the_o light_n within_o 20._o but_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n they_o must_v by_o no_o mean_n hear_v preach_v for_o as_o i_o hint_v from_o g._n fox_n we_o must_v not_o hear_v man_n for_o the_o prophet_n bid_v cease_v from_o man._n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o make_v against_o we_o that_o it_o make_v for_o we_o at_o a_o high_a rate_n for_o who_o preach_v without_o that_o light_n of_o christ_n that_o the_o quaker_n affirm_v all_o true_a preach_v proceed_v from_o preach_v not_o from_o the_o discovery_n and_o leading_n of_o the_o light_n and_o consequent_o all_o such_o preach_a be_v in_o the_o darkness_n where_o god_n counsel_n can_v be_v know_v nay_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o people_n can_v be_v turn_v from_o darkness_n to_o the_o light_n the_o end_n of_o preach_v by_o those_o who_o deny_v that_o man_n ought_v to_o preach_v from_o the_o revelation_n and_o guiding_n of_o the_o light_n §_o 2._o he_o have_v also_o with_o manifest_a baseness_n bring_v we_o in_o as_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o our_o preach_v by_o the_o light_n within_o and_o that_o doctrine_n of_o god_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n whereas_o we_o read_v believe_v practice_n and_o preach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n for_o truth_n than_o what_o be_v explicit_o or_o implicit_o there_o hold_v forth_o and_o testify_v unto_o though_o we_o confess_v that_o we_o do_v only_a so_o believe_v practice_n and_o preach_v it_o because_o there_o write_v but_o from_o a_o inward_a live_a power_n or_o spirit_n which_o both_o open_v the_o mystery_n thereof_o to_o our_o understanding_n beget_v right_a belief_n in_o they_o and_o at_o sundry_a time_n move_v upon_o our_o heart_n to_o declare_v a_o fresh_a those_o ancient_n bless_a truth_n therein_o express_v and_o this_o be_v what_o g._n f._n mean_v and_o we_o all_o understand_v by_o cease_v from_o man_n to_o wit_n mere_a man_n not_o man_n inspire_a or_o so_o divine_o qualify_v but_o he_o have_v a_o scripture_n and_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o w._n smith_n to_o justify_v his_o charge_n at_o least_o he_o think_v so_o and_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v except_o they_o be_v send_v as_o it_o be_v write_v how_o beautiful_a be_v 18._o the_o foot_n of_o they_o that_o preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n etc._n etc._n we_o say_v so_o to_o and_o do_v we_o mean_v the_o same_o it_o be_v happy_a for_o j._n faldo_n by_o be_v send_v we_o understand_v by_o the_o light_n within_o and_o the_o scripture_n without_o a_o be_v anoint_v by_o the_o immediate_a power_n of_o god_n without_o which_o the_o disciple_n themselves_o who_o have_v so_o many_o advantage_n above_o we_o be_v not_o to_o budge_v they_o can_v have_v tell_v most_o of_o what_o jesus_n have_v do_v and_o suffer_v which_o though_o truth_n in_o itself_o and_o they_o able_a to_o relate_v it_o yet_o bare_a truth_n and_o all_o they_o have_v see_v or_o know_v without_o a_o live_v immediate_a power_n and_o commission_n within_o the_o baptism_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n they_o be_v not_o to_o budge_v on_o god_n account_n if_o j._n faldo_n can_v give_v we_o as_o good_a evidence_n of_o his_o be_v so_o call_v as_o he_o have_v do_v of_o a_o false_a and_o enrage_v spirit_n against_o the_o truth_n we_o shall_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o gospel-minister_n but_o since_o he_o dis-acknowledges_a all_o share_n in_o any_o such_o mission_n we_o just_o refuse_v he_o any_o part_n in_o a_o gospel-ministry_n §_o 3._o in_o short_a if_o none_o can_v preach_v without_o be_v send_v then_o since_o he_o &_o his_o tribe_n be_v never_o so_o send_v they_o ought_v not_o to_o preach_v nor_o any_o to_o hear_v they_o for_o right_o faith_n can_v never_o come_v by_o such_o a_o ministry_n no_o they_o be_v right_a gospel-minister_n &_o their_o foot_n true_o beautyful_a who_o gospel_n be_v peace_n on_o earth_n &_o goodwill_n towards_o man_n not_o garment_n roll_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o king_n prince_n ruler_n and_o people_n no_o worldly_a army_n battle_n victory_n trophy_n spoil_n sequestration_n decimation_n and_o the_o like_a bloodthirsty_a and_o tyrannical_a project_n in_o which_o j._n faldo_n and_o his_o poor_a nonconforming_a minister_n have_v have_v their_o hand_n almost_o over_o head_n and_o ear_n till_o they_o have_v well_o nigh_o lose_v their_o ear_n and_o their_o head_n too_o such_o covenant-breaking_a self-seeking_a proud_a covetous_a tyrannical_a club-law_n persecute_v priest_n we_o can_v never_o own_o but_o ever_o do_v and_o ever_o shall_v earnest_o bear_v our_o faithful_a testimony_n against_o they_o as_o the_o locust_n caterpillar_n serpent_n and_o dragon_n of_o the_o earth_n who_o cruelty_n self-seeking_a and_o falseness_n have_v grieve_v good_a man_n and_o cause_v the_o wicked_a to_o blaspheme_n the_o name_n of_o the_o god_n of_o heaven_n who_o damnation_n slumber_v not_o if_o by_o unfeigned_a contrition_n not_o prevent_v §_o 4._o well_o but_o we_o be_v to_o hear_v what_o strength_n william_n smith_n primer_z can_v give_v to_o his_o charge_n quest_n be_v there_o something_o of_o god_n in_o my_o conscience_n that_o will_v give_v i_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o answ_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o can_v do_v it_o that_o be_v principal_o there_o be_v no_o other_o teacher_n no_o other_o revealer_n or_o discoverer_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o will_n of_o god_n to_o we_o then_o christ_n the_o light_n as_o say_v the_o scripture_n no_o man_n know_v the_o father_n but_o the_o son_n the_o true_a light_n and_o he_o to_o who_o the_o son_n reveal_v he_o and_o whatever_o make_v manifest_a be_v light_n now_o unless_o a_o man_n may_v know_v god_n without_o any_o manifestation_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o he_o shall_v be_v know_v without_o light_n that_o only_o give_v it_o especial_o when_o it_o shall_v be_v consider_v that_o he_o be_v light_v itself_o if_o then_o there_o be_v no_o know_v of_o god_n but_o that_o which_o we_o know_v must_v first_o be_v manifest_v and_o that_o whatever_o make_v manifest_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n be_v light_n it_o evident_o follow_v that_o the_o light_n be_v the_o alone_a author_n of_o those_o discovery_n man_n receive_v of_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n and_o whatever_o knowledge_n may_v be_v give_v or_o right_o obtain_v through_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o the_o scripture_n as_o such_o but_o that_o divine_a light_n which_o give_v inward_a conviction_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o be_v outward_o read_v or_o write_v in_o that_o excellent_a book_n call_v scripture_n so_o that_o still_o to_o christ_n the_o true_a light_n as_o the_o chief_a cause_n in_o which_o sense_n he_o be_v most_o proper_o so_o call_v do_v we_o right_o ascribe_v all_o the_o knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o god_n and_o his_o everlasting_a kingdom_n chap._n fourteen_o his_o charge_n of_o our_o denial_n of_o gospel-prayer_n invert_v the_o prayer_n he_o plead_v for_o anti-gospel_n true_a prayer_n state_v assert_v and_o defend_v with_o plainness_n from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n that_o as_o well_o in_o family_n as_o meeting_n and_o at_o meal_n as_o both_o false_a worship_n detestable_a to_o god_n all_o false_a wherein_o god_n spirit_n be_v not_o the_o first_o and_o chief_a mover_n and_o assister_n the_o subtlety_n of_o satan_n in_o put_v upon_o unacceptable_a prayer_n to_o prevent_v true_a prayer_n §_o 1._o but_o we_o deny_v prayer_n as_o well_o as_o preach_v 26._o if_o he_o may_v be_v credit_v and_o indeed_o we_o do_v so_o by_o the_o same_o figure_n or_o contrary_a way_n of_o speak_v that_o we_o deny_v they_o that_o be_v as_o john_n faldo_n own_v they_o but_o not_o that_o therefore_o we_o shall_v deny_v they_o at_o all_o his_o charge_n lie_v in_o three_o part_n first_o that_o we_o contemn_v true_a gospel-prayer_n to_o prove_v which_o
a_o live_a touch_n and_o sense_n from_o his_o pure_a live_n and_o eternal_a spirit_n whereby_o to_o set_v our_o spirit_n at_o work_n this_o be_v that_o oil_n which_o make_v the_o chariot_n wheel_n go_v smooth_o and_o without_o which_o they_o grate_n and_o jar_n those_o who_o have_v not_o word_n especial_o in_o public_a place_n have_v sigh_n and_o groan_n and_o a_o deep_a and_o silent_a exercise_n of_o spirit_n god-ward_n in_o which_o bless_a communion_n be_v join_v and_o refreshment_n that_o outdo_v all_o worldly_a satisfaction_n that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o all_o to_o wait_v upon_o god_n and_o that_o not_o only_o at_o public_a meeting_n but_o at_o their_o own_o house_n also_o and_o therein_o as_o well_o at_o their_o meal_n as_o at_o all_o other_o time_n for_o worship_n if_o any_o have_v the_o motion_n of_o god_n eternal_a spirit_n upon_o their_o heart_n let_v it_o be_v answer_v to_o god_n praise_n and_o the_o edification_n of_o other_o if_o not_o let_v none_o offer_v up_o a_o unsanctified_a dead_a sacrifice_n to_o the_o lord_n as_o all_o that_o come_v from_o mere_a man_n be_v for_o it_o will_v be_v their_o burden_n neither_o prodigal_o spend_v their_o own_o portion_n or_o that_o bread_n upon_o other_o god_n have_v bestow_v for_o their_o own_o use_n thus_o whether_o such_o eat_v drink_v sleep_v or_o otherwise_o enjoy_v of_o god_n benefit_n let_v all_o be_v do_v with_o holy_a awe_o and_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n our_o father_n as_o it_o will_v certain_o be_v if_o there_o be_v but_o a_o still_a and_o reverend_a wait_v in_o spirit_n upon_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o light_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v make_v sensible_a of_o his_o goodness_n and_o blessing_n upon_o we_o and_o unity_n with_o we_o in_o our_o undertake_n and_o enjoyment_n and_o let_v this_o be_v a_o warn_v unto_o all_o in_o the_o name_n and_o fear_v of_o the_o jealous_a god_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n that_o they_o do_v not_o offer_v up_o to_o god_n their_o halt_n and_o lame_a and_o blind_a self-sacrifice_n which_o my_o god_n abhor_v especial_o you_o professor_n who_o leave_n be_v large_a but_o your_o fruit_n little_a think_v not_o to_o be_v hear_v by_o your_o multitude_n of_o word_n nor_o variousness_n of_o duty_n god_n regard_v the_o root_n the_o life_n the_o power_n the_o spirit_n that_o beget_v they_o and_o who_o life_n it_o be_v that_o animate_v they_o if_o they_o arise_v from_o god_n holy_a spirit_n and_o seed_n of_o life_n they_o can_v they_o will_v intercede_v and_o prevail_v but_o if_o not_o god_n will_v say_v to_o you_o one_o day_n who_o have_v require_v these_o thing_n at_o your_o hand_n o_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o your_o own_o soul_n offer_v not_o god_n a_o worship_n out_o of_o his_o own_o spirit_n much_o less_o contend_v for_o it_o for_o you_o strengthen_v satan_n bond_n in_o so_o do_v and_o feed_v the_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n the_o paint_a jezabel_n the_o mother_n of_o harlot_n from_o who_o these_o false_a accurse_a birth_n have_v come_v who_o under_o outward_a imitation_n and_o performance_n hold_v people_n in_o death_n and_o darkness_n and_o perfect_a enmity_n against_o god_n and_o his_o live_n spiritual_n holy_a seed_n in_o they_o and_o other_o that_o be_v able_a to_o bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n which_o be_v the_o pure_a way_n of_o god_n and_o in_o who_o be_v the_o blessing_n forever_o for_o the_o devil_n the_o subtle_a serpent_n have_v get_v into_o those_o outward_a court_n of_o religion_n sign_n and_o shadow_n of_o the_o good_a thing_n which_o god_n have_v give_v credit_n to_o by_o his_o appear_v once_o in_o they_o he_o plead_v their_o divine_a institution_n against_o the_o very_a life_n and_o substance_n that_o like_o old_a garment_n it_o have_v put_v off_o and_o so_o all_o be_v deceive_v by_o his_o transformation_n and_o subtle_a twine_n who_o come_v not_o to_o that_o inward_a sense_n of_o life_n and_o power_n which_o relish_v the_o very_a spirit_n and_o can_v try_v the_o inside_n servant_n be_v not_o master_n because_o they_o wear_v their_o old_a clothes_n neither_o be_v the_o devil_n a_o angel_n of_o light_n because_o he_o put_v on_o the_o pure_a ware_n the_o spirit_n old_a clothes_n god_n once_o appear_v at_o the_o mountain_n and_o jerusalem_n therefore_o be_v either_o worship_n to_o continue_v no_o god_n disappear_v that_o he_o may_v set_v up_o a_o more_o spiritual_a worship_n where_o end_n meat_n and_o drink_n and_o all_o outward_a service_n figurative_a of_o the_o good_a thing_n come_v §_o 8._o let_v it_o not_o be_v evil_o take_v by_o any_o of_o you_o neither_o be_v you_o offend_v in_o i_o or_o the_o doctrine_n i_o here_o defend_v for_o all_o preach_n praying_n grace_n as_o they_o be_v call_v with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o day_n which_o arise_v not_o from_o the_o holy_a power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n it_o be_v at_o this_o time_n lay_v upon_o i_o and_o i_o be_o bold_a to_o declare_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o eternal_a holy_a god_n a_o blast_n a_o utter_a blast_n be_v come_v upon_o they_o all_o and_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v among_o the_o chaff_n and_o not_o the_o wheat_n in_o the_o day_n of_o god_n terrible_a tempest_n where_o nothing_o but_o the_o solid_a and_o weighty_a seed_n shall_v remain_v stable_a and_o unshaken_a o_o bow_n bow_v you_o tall_a cedar_n and_o sturdy_a oak_n come_v out_o and_o be_v you_o separate_v by_o the_o power_n of_o my_o god_n from_o all_o your_o invention_n self-contrivance_n self-running_n and_o willing_n you_o child_n of_o the_o night_n and_o lover_n of_o your_o own_o work_n more_o than_o lover_n of_o god_n who_o out_o of_o the_o live_n pure_a eternal_a spirit_n of_o life_n be_v hold_v forth_o faith_n worship_n prayer_n and_o ordinance_n and_o contend_v for_o they_o against_o the_o very_a life_n itself_o that_o in_o a_o more_o plain_a appearance_n be_v rise_v depart_v from_o they_o and_o come_v to_o know_v the_o one_o true_a faith_n worship_n and_o great_a ordinance_n of_o god_n by_o the_o operation_n of_o his_o spirit_n in_o all_o your_o heart_n and_o conscience_n else_o you_o will_v die_v in_o your_o sin_n and_o christ_n shall_v profit_v you_o nothing_o but_o your_o dream_n of_o salvation_n shall_v vanish_v and_o utter_a destruction_n will_v be_v your_o portion_n for_o evermore_o chap._n xv._n his_o charge_n of_o our_o denial_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o sacrament_n introduce_v with_o a_o discourse_n of_o positive_a command_n destructive_a of_o the_o foundation_n of_o religion_n the_o priest_n against_o god_n scripture_n and_o reason_n he_o confound_v himself_o baptism_n of_o water_n prove_v john_n and_o not_o to_o continue_v mat._n 28._o 19_o 1_o cor._n 1._o 17._o ephes_n 4._o 5._o clear_v and_o vindicate_v the_o one_o spiritual_a baptism_n defend_v §_o 1._o i_o be_o now_o come_v to_o the_o two_o last_v particular_n of_o this_o charge_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o he_o introduce_v with_o a_o short_a discourse_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n command_n respect_v gospel-ordinance_n which_o he_o say_v we_o deny_v i_o shall_v only_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o passage_n where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o ordinance_n hitherto_o consider_v be_v call_v moral_a from_o their_o natural_a obligation_n 34._o although_o respect_v the_o substance_n they_o deserve_v a_o more_o evangelical_n denomination_n without_o which_o we_o can_v say_v he_o call_v they_o christian_a ordinance_n but_o these_o two_o i_o come_v now_o to_o consider_v be_v pure_o positive_a and_o depend_v mere_o upon_o divine_o reveal_v institution_n and_o god_n have_v so_o express_v his_o jealousy_n over_o this_o right_n of_o his_o that_o when_o sin_v not_o only_o against_o natural_a light_n but_o superad_v precept_n to_o confirm_v and_o strengthen_v its_o doubtfulness_n and_o decay_n have_v be_v pass_v by_o without_o any_o special_a expression_n of_o his_o provocation_n sin_n commit_v against_o his_o positive_a law_n as_o circumcision_n and_o all_o ceremonial_a law_n as_o well_o as_o water-baptism_n and_o what_o be_v general_o call_v the_o lord_n supper_n have_v be_v avenge_v with_o a_o high_a hand_n to_o all_o i_o return_v these_o short_a head_n of_o matter_n first_o that_o a_o ministry_n ground_v internal_o upon_o the_o grace_n and_o gift_n of_o god_n external_o upon_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n a_o well_o order_v church_n consist_v of_o religious_a member_n preach_v pray_v and_o that_o scriptural_o too_o by_o he_o call_v christian-ordinance_n be_v by_o he_o make_v natural_a to_o all_o nation_n antecedent_n to_o christ_n outward_a come_v and_o consequent_o there_o be_v the_o thing_n christianity_n before_o the_o name_n christianity_n which_o plead_v our_o cause_n against_o his_o first_o chapter_n and_o a_o gross_a self-contradiction_n next_o that_o those_o he_o call_v natural_a ordinance_n and_o of_o universal_a obligation_n be_v far_o more_o
sanctifier_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n when_o the_o disciple_n and_o whole_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v so_o frequent_a in_o this_o ordinance_n and_o when_o the_o apostle_n paul_n tell_v we_o to_o the_o corinthian_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v etc._n etc._n it_o be_v for_o those_o to_o who_o christ_n be_v come_v by_o a_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n not_o those_o in_o a_o state_n of_o sin_n unconvert_v to_o christ_n that_o i_o may_v brief_o and_o full_o reply_v be_v please_v to_o observe_v 1_o that_o we_o do_v deny_v bread_n and_o wine_n to_o have_v be_v give_v and_o that_o by_o command_n of_o christ_n to_o his_o disciple_n 2_o that_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n to_o they_o of_o that_o life_n he_o will_v give_v for_o the_o world_n and_o which_o at_o that_o time_n they_o be_v weak_a in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o 3_o we_o believe_v the_o life_n most_o eminent_o mean_v and_o which_o they_o be_v to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o remembrance_n of_o be_v that_o flesh_n and_o blood_n that_o in_o the_o 6._o of_o john_n he_o say_v who_o do_v not_o eat_v nor_o drink_v thereof_o 58._o shall_v have_v no_o life_n in_o they_o and_o which_o 5._o verse_n after_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n 4_o it_o be_v our_o faith_n that_o this_o heavenly_a bread_n and_o wine_n and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n which_o such_o be_v to_o eat_v of_o that_o will_v have_v life_n eternal_a for_o which_o he_o come_v and_o of_o which_o the_o disciple_n themselves_o be_v then_o so_o ignorant_a be_v the_o thing_n signify_v by_o the_o sign_n christ_n give_v his_o disciple_n 5_o that_o sign_n be_v no_o long_o of_o force_n in_o point_n of_o institution_n then_o till_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v come_v so_o that_o who_o true_o witness_v the_o come_v of_o christ_n into_o their_o soul_n and_o the_o eternal_a bread_n of_o life_n or_o flesh_n and_o blood_n to_o nourish_v be_v right_o come_v to_o a_o end_n of_o the_o sign_n and_o figure_n 6_o that_o christ_n do_v so_o come_v be_v evident_a from_o many_o scripture_n there_o be_v some_o stand_n here_o that_o shall_v not_o taste_v of_o death_n 28._o say_v he_o till_o they_o see_v the_o son_n of_o man_n come_v in_o his_o kingdom_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a i_o will_v come_v to_o you_o imply_v that_o he_o be_v the_o comforter_n that_o shall_v come_v to_o they_o after_o the_o withdraw_a of_o that_o outward_a appearance_n which_o be_v expedient_a for_o they_o to_o be_v do_v he_o that_o be_v with_o you_o shall_v be_v in_o you_o and_o abundance_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n 7_o that_o the_o practice_n of_o it_o after_o the_o pour_v forth_o of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v any_o institution_n or_o so_o much_o as_o a_o continuance_n of_o it_o upon_o a_o institution_n any_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n forbear_v several_a thing_n lawful_a in_o themselves_o that_o be_v upon_o the_o command_n of_o the_o jewish_a ceremonial_a law_n forbid_v the_o circumcision_n of_o many_o gentile_n and_o above_o all_o the_o apostle_n paul_n purify_n of_o himself_o at_o the_o temple_n of_o jerusalem_n after_o he_o have_v be_v near_o thirty_o year_n a_o christian_n or_o gospel-preacher_n and_o consequent_o a_o thrower-down_a and_o demolish_a both_o of_o the_o temple_n and_o all_o its_o ceremonial_a worship_n 8_o that_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v and_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n turn_v to_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o be_v account_v member_n of_o the_o several_a church_n because_o of_o such_o profession_n do_v not_o present_o come_v to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o spirit_n or_o discern_v his_o spiritual_a manifestation_n and_o whilst_o they_o be_v as_o yet_o weak_a and_o carnal_a in_o their_o conception_n of_o christ_n believe_v in_o he_o and_o account_v of_o he_o but_o after_o the_o flesh_n a_o knowledge_n of_o he_o the_o apostle_n himself_o confess_v once_o but_o to_o have_v have_v the_o outward_a bread_n and_o wine_n may_v be_v suitable_a to_o that_o sort_n of_o belief_n and_o a_o sign_n show_v forth_o a_o more_o spiritual_a internal_a bread_n and_o cup_n which_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o same_o foregoing_a chapter_n to_o the_o corinthian_n express_v thus_o for_o we_o be_v many_o be_v one_o bread_n 17._o and_o one_o body_n for_o we_o be_v all_o partaker_n of_o that_o one_o bread_n the_o cup_n of_o blessing_n which_o we_o bless_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v be_v it_o not_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n i_o speak_v as_o to_o wise_a man_n judge_v you_o what_o i_o say_v which_o evident_o import_v a_o more_o inward_a heavenly_a bread_n fellowship_n and_o communion_n both_o with_o christ_n and_o one_o and_o another_o 9_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o stumble_v any_o that_o it_o shall_v last_v to_o that_o day_n and_o yet_o be_v lay_v aside_o now_o for_o custom_n when_o once_o introduce_v and_o receive_v be_v not_o easy_a to_o be_v relinquish_v or_o leave_v off_o and_o it_o have_v be_v the_o token_n christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o great_a weakness_n fear_v and_o unbelief_n concern_v he_o it_o be_v quick_o embrace_v and_o imitate_v by_o such_o as_o believe_v especial_o jew_n who_o just_a come_n out_o of_o a_o multitude_n of_o external_n service_n be_v ready_a to_o make_v part_n of_o their_o religion_n consist_v therein_o but_o as_o such_o come_v to_o grow_v into_o the_o true_a jew_n state_n they_o see_v beyond_o all_o exterior_a sign_n and_o service_n and_o that_o nothing_o which_o can_v be_v taste_v or_o handle_v and_o that_o perish_v with_o the_o use_v and_o that_o can_v never_o cleanse_v the_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n but_o be_v the_o shadow_n only_o of_o christ_n the_o live_v eternal_a substance_n and_o bread_n of_o life_n can_v be_v a_o stand_a ordinance_n of_o the_o everlasting_a gospel_n §_o 3._o and_o true_o when_o i_o have_v sometime_o consider_v the_o apostle_n paul_n inspire_a epistle_n to_o his_o belove_a timothy_n &_o that_o among_o the_o many_o weighty_a plain_a and_o necessary_a thing_n therein_o declare_v &_o recommend_v for_o the_o increase_n of_o godliness_n and_o good_a order_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n he_o shall_v be_v want_v to_o express_v something_o about_o these_o two_o point_n of_o water-baptism_n &_o the_o lord_n supper_n so_o call_v and_o insist_v upon_o as_o the_o most_o weighty_a ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o comparison_n of_o which_o pray_v preach_a good_a life_n and_o such_o like_a the_o great_a subject_n of_o those_o epistle_n j._n faldo_n repute_v mere_a heathenism_n i_o have_v conclude_v to_o me self_o that_o have_v his_o value_n of_o they_o be_v equal_a with_o what_o some_o now_o adays_o put_v upon_o they_o he_o will_v not_o or_o rather_o the_o holy_a spirit_n have_v omit_v a_o very_a peculiar_a recommendation_n of_o they_o but_o though_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o dull_v the_o edge_n of_o their_o spirit_n who_o daily_o cut_v and_o hack_v we_o for_o our_o not_o denial_n but_o affirm_v the_o fulfil_v of_o they_o by_o the_o come_n of_o a_o more_o live_a bread_n yet_o our_o so_o know_v and_o witness_v a_o more_o heavenly_a table_n spread_v and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o eternal_a god_n withdraw_v out_o of_o that_o so_o abuse_a practice_n by_o the_o idolatry_n superstition_n and_o pervertion_n of_o several_a age_n and_o that_o revenge_n bloodshed_n and_o destruction_n which_o have_v follow_v the_o several_a contender_n for_o it_o all_o without_o commission_n as_o well_o as_o out_o of_o the_o primitive_a order_n be_v the_o chief_a ground_n nor_o of_o deny_v it_o ever_o to_o have_v be_v in_o use_n before_o its_o abuse_n as_o be_v before_o express_v but_o of_o our_o let_a fall_n any_o further_a practice_n of_o it_o and_o this_o i_o hope_v will_v be_v account_v a_o modest_a sober_a and_o christian_a account_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o we_o leave_v with_o god_n to_o weigh_v against_o the_o chaffy_a flurt_n and_o vilify_a epithet_n j._n faldo_n use_v against_o we_o and_o which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o omit_v to_o transcribe_v chap._n xvii_o his_o charge_n of_o our_o deny_v christ_n transaction_n to_o influence_n into_o our_o justification_n consider_v his_o proof_n not_o for_o he_o his_o abuse_n of_o our_o friend_n word_n justification_n distinguish_v upon_o as_o remission_n and_o as_o daily_a acceptance_n the_o transaction_n of_o christ_n large_o own_a by_o we_o the_o scripture_n confirm_v our_o faith_n in_o christ_n as_o a_o general_a and_o particular_a saviour_n no_o work_n of_o man_n meritorious_a §_o 1._o i_o be_o now_o come_v to_o that_o part_n of_o his_o charge_n which_o affirm_v our_o denial_n of_o the_o transaction_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n to_o have_v any_o influence_n
the_o christ_n or_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n only_o i_o leave_v with_o christ_n scripture_n and_o reason_n to_o determine_v certain_a i_o be_o that_o this_o principle_n must_v centre_n in_o that_o senseless_a dream_n of_o j._n reeve_n and_o l._n muggleton_n as_o well_o as_o that_o it_o make_v a_o perfect_a difference_n betwixt_o he_o that_o be_v before_o abraham_n and_o he_o that_o say_v so_o he_o that_o tell_v his_o disciple_n i_o will_v not_o leave_v you_o comfortless_a and_o he_o that_o say_v i_o will_v come_v to_o you_o again_o nay_o why_o shall_v christ_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n it_o be_v expedient_a he_o shall_v go_v away_o since_o certain_o if_o some_o more_o excellent_a and_o profitable_a appearance_n of_o himself_o have_v not_o be_v to_o succeed_v at_o least_o as_o to_o they_o it_o have_v be_v far_o more_o expedient_a he_o shall_v in_o that_o manner_n have_v remain_v among_o they_o and_o why_o do_v the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o no_o more_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o be_v reveal_v in_o he_o and_o in_o the_o saint_n as_o their_o hope_n of_o glory_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o quicken_a spirit_n and_o lord_n from_o heaven_n if_o that_o body_n be_v the_o entire_a christ_n &_o not_o rather_o the_o body_n prepare_v for_o that_o divine_a power_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n to_o transact_v in_o and_o appear_v by_o and_o to_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o with_o respect_n to_o that_o great_a manifestation_n be_v denominate_v christ_n or_o anoint_v shall_v we_o dare_v think_v that_o he_o who_o so_o speak_v and_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n so_o testify_v be_v not_o the_o true_a christ_n which_o to_o be_v sure_o be_v before_o that_o visible_a body_n god_n forbid_v let_v that_o sin_n lie_v at_o j._n faldo_n door_n §_o 2._o but_o he_o offer_v to_o we_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v reveal_v to_o he_o simeon_n by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o see_v death_n before_o he_o have_v see_v the_o lord_n christ_n and_o he_o come_v by_o the_o spirit_n into_o 27._o the_o temple_n and_o when_o the_o parent_n bring_v in_o the_o child_n jesus_n then_o take_v he_o he_o up_o in_o his_o arm_n and_o say_v lord_n now_o let_v thou_o thy_o servant_n depart_v in_o peace_n for_o my_o eye_n have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n a_o light_n to_o lighton_a the_o gentile_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v and_o will_v be_v grant_v that_o simeon_n see_v the_o lord_n be_v christ_n but_o i_o hope_v j._n faldo_n will_v not_o deny_v unto_o that_o good_a man_n who_o wait_v for_o israel_n consolation_n that_o he_o have_v as_o well_o a_o spiritual_a as_o natural_a a_o inward_a as_o outward_a sight_n of_o christ_n for_o can_v he_o think_v that_o the_o word_n which_o take_v flesh_n be_v nothing_o of_o that_o saviour_n and_o that_o the_o true_a light_n which_o then_o appear_v be_v to_o be_v exclude_v any_o share_n therein_o will_n j._n faldo_n or_o any_o man_n that_o own_v scripture_n dare_v to_o affirm_v there_o be_v not_o something_o belong_v to_o the_o true_a and_o complete_a christ_n beyond_o what_o his_o outward_a eye_n can_v possible_o see_v certain_o this_o allegation_n from_o luk_n 2._o 26._o will_v never_o prove_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n which_o the_o father_n prepare_v for_o he_o to_o be_v the_o whole_a entire_a christ_n saviour_n light_n salvation_n and_o glory_n of_o israel_n unless_o christ_n under_o all_o these_o consideration_n consist_v or_o be_v make_v up_o of_o the_o more_o outward_a body_n that_o only_o be_v obvious_a to_o the_o outward_a eye_n which_o to_o affirm_v be_v both_o to_o deny_v his_o divinity_n and_o to_o conclude_v simeon_n void_a of_o any_o spiritual_a sight_n or_o intendment_n in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v christ_n as_o a_o light_n enlighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o god_n salvation_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n though_o still_o be_v it_o understand_v that_o we_o confess_v that_o child_n as_o see_v and_o understand_v by_o simeon_n with_o respect_n to_o that_o great_a end_n of_o his_o appearance_n to_o be_v the_o lord_n be_v christ_n nay_o j._n faldo_n himself_o say_v as_o much_o p._n 70._o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v a_o exalt_v the_o body_n above_o the_o divinity_n nay_o a_o utter_a exclusion_n of_o the_o divinity_n with_o respect_n to_o the_o true_a christ_n let_v none_o then_o be_v so_o ungodly_a and_o unjust_a to_o we_o as_o to_o infer_v we_o deny_v the_o lord_n be_v christ_n because_o we_o rather_o choose_v to_o say_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n than_o christ_n for_o say_v he_o christ_n be_v god_n manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n see_v j._n f._n p._n 72_o 77._o §_o 3._o and_o lest_o any_o shall_v think_v that_o therein_o i_o contradict_v the_o inspire_v say_v of_o that_o just_a man_n when_o he_o say_v my_o eye_n have_v behold_v thy_o salvation_n the_o word_n import_v no_o more_o than_o this_o my_o eye_n have_v behold_v the_o manifestation_n and_o break_v forth_o of_o thy_o seed_n and_o heir_n who_o be_v come_v to_o visit_v the_o world_n and_o bruise_v the_o serpent_n head_n my_o eye_n have_v see_v he_o by_o who_o thy_o salvation_n shall_v be_v declare_v through_o who_o thou_o will_v put_v forth_o thy_o arm_n and_o work_v mighty_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o man._n and_o this_o his_o other_o scripture_n prove_v at_o large_a for_o i_o the_o most_o considerable_a of_o which_o i_o take_v to_o be_v this_o the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n raise_v up_o jesus_n who_o you_o slay_v and_o hang_v on_o a_o tree_n him_n 74._o have_v god_n exalt_v with_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n for_o to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n act._n 5._o 30_o 31._o which_o can_v no_o more_o be_v understand_v express_o strict_o and_o entire_o so_o than_o it_o will_v be_v reason_n able_a for_o a_o man_n to_o say_v that_o when_o samuel_n die_v the_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o be_v call_v samuel_n die_v and_o not_o rather_o the_o body_n of_o he_o who_o be_v call_v samuel_n and_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n and_o reason_n why_o the_o socinian_o muggletonian_o and_o several_a anabaptist_n hold_v the_o mortality_n of_o the_o soul_n because_o otherwise_o those_o word_n which_o speak_v of_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o be_v take_v proper_o as_o they_o take_v and_o defend_v they_o i_o say_v then_o and_o that_o with_o force_n of_o reason_n and_o which_o at_o this_o time_n may_v be_v more_o to_o the_o conviction_n of_o some_o the_o suffrage_n of_o our_o malignant_a adversary_n j._n faldo_n himself_o however_o contradict_v to_o his_o forementioned_a sense_n the_o word_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v the_o god_n of_o our_o father_n who_o raise_v up_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n from_o the_o dead_a which_o you_o slay_v and_o hang_v upon_o a_o tree_n him_n who_o body_n you_o so_o cruel_o use_v have_v god_n exalt_v with_o his_o right_a hand_n to_o be_v a_o prince_n and_o a_o saviour_n for_o to_o give_v repentance_n to_o israel_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n to_o put_v this_o out_o of_o doubt_n hear_v j._n faldo_n his_o own_o self_n let_v not_o these_o blasphemer_n of_o the_o lord_n of_o life_n and_o glory_n delude_v people_n with_o a_o fancy_n as_o if_o we_o believe_v and_o preach_v the_o flesh_n and_o 72._o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v christ_n separated_z from_o his_o soul_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o man_n soul_n but_o undefiled_a or_o that_o we_o take_v his_o man_n nature_n to_o be_v christ_n separated_z from_o his_o eternal_a and_o divine_a nature_n one_o will_v think_v i_o have_v spend_v my_o time_n in_o vain_a when_o i_o set_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o divine_a light_n life_n power_n wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n be_v not_o unconcern_v in_o the_o true_a christ_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o body_n which_o only_o die_v be_v not_o the_o entire_a jesus_n or_o saviour_n since_o our_o adversary_n call_v we_o blasphemer_n and_o deluder_n and_o i_o know_v not_o for_o what_o except_o it_o be_v for_o teach_v that_o doctrine_n he_o recommend_v in_o the_o same_o paragraph_n wherein_o he_o call_v we_o those_o hateful_a name_n §_o 4._o but_o that_o his_o great_a inconsistency_n with_o himself_o may_v be_v further_o manifest_v hear_v he_o again_o if_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a as_o not_o to_o see_v the_o error_n of_o disowning_n jesus_n of_o nazareth_n the_o son_n of_o mary_n 75._o who_o be_v hang_v on_o a_o tree_n put_v into_o the_o sepulchre_n of_o joseph_n of_o arimathia_n to_o be_v yet_o alive_a and_o the_o christ_n of_o god_n by_o all_o these_o scripture_n the_o most_o considerable_a whereof_o be_v answer_v it_o be_v a_o blindness_n wherewith_o never_o any_o before_o the_o quaker_n who_o profess_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o true_a testimony_n be_v smite_v
he_o be_v please_v to_o repute_v he_o though_o it_o be_v for_o vindicate_v the_o pure_a christian_a religion_n as_o it_o be_v once_o deliver_v to_o the_o saint_n §_o 6._o but_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o discourse_n let_v we_o take_v notice_n of_o a_o expression_n or_o two_o that_o this_o critic_n le_fw-fr we_o fall_v in_o the_o close_a of_o this_o paraphrase_n and_o that_o be_v concern_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o come_v 91._o it_o be_v more_o proper_o referrable_a to_o light_n then_o man._n that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n light_v every_o man_n rather_o than_o that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n come_v into_o the_o world_n if_o say_v he_o it_o shall_v refer_v to_o man_n every_o man_n in_o the_o very_a instant_n of_o or_o before_o his_o birth_n christ_n enlighten_v it_o must_v be_v mean_v of_o create_a faculty_n for_o experience_n and_o sense_n without_o any_o one_o instance_n to_o control_v it_o will_v tell_v we_o that_o none_o can_v believe_v without_o hear_v nor_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n he_o may_v much_o better_o have_v say_v of_o himself_o then_o of_o the_o quakers-meeting_a that_o he_o be_v but_o a_o puppet_n indeed_o who_o know_v nothing_o but_o by_o hear-say_n or_o mere_a imitation_n if_o man_n have_v not_o some_o more_o inward_a teacher_n farewell_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o all_o revelation_n the_o scripture_n and_o whatever_o come_v by_o or_o from_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a this_o man_n if_o yet_o he_o be_v to_o much_o besot_v to_o deserve_v so_o excellent_a a_o name_n at_o once_o destroy_v all_o way_n or_o mean_n whereby_o to_o know_v and_o that_o not_o only_o to_o the_o quaker_n but_o himself_o too_o for_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o be_v ground_v upon_o revelation_n and_o his_o knowledge_n upon_o they_o as_o he_o pretend_v take_v away_o revelation_n and_o you_o take_v away_o the_o scripture_n and_o consequent_o what_o knowledge_n j._n faldo_n pretend_v to_o have_v from_o they_o fall_v to_o the_o ground_n to_o pass_v by_o what_o may_v be_v offer_v from_o the_o ancient_a puritan_n brownist_n and_o independent_o on_o our_o behalf_n who_o be_v once_o repute_v warm_a stickler_n for_o that_o j._n f._n proud_o esteem_v enthusiasm_n for_o which_o they_o become_v the_o derision_n of_o carnalist_n he_o forget_v to_o who_o fanatic_a belong_v and_o cut_v off_o his_o pretend_a preach_v from_o the_o god_n above_o etc._n etc._n p._n 113._o thus_o be_v this_o blind_a leader_n fall_v into_o the_o ditch_n of_o his_o own_o dig_v but_o must_v it_o be_v absurd_a because_o child_n at_o the_o instant_a of_o their_o come_n into_o the_o world_n can_v be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o enlighten_v very_o well_o and_o what_o think_v he_o of_o the_o instant_a of_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n out_o of_o the_o virgin_n be_v womb_n do_v he_o enlighten_v all_o who_o shall_v saving_o be_v enlighten_v at_o that_o instant_a a_o mad_a disputant_n indeed_o what_o be_v it_o enlighten_v simeon_n who_o tell_v and_o reveal_v to_o he_o the_o lord_n be_v christ_n for_o shame_n quit_v all_o pretence_n to_o dispute_v §_o 7._o but_o let_v we_o hear_v he_o further_o there_o be_v a_o reason_n in_o the_o text_n give_v such_o a_o countenance_n to_o refer_v it_o to_o the_o light_n as_o will_v never_o be_v find_v for_o the_o contrary_a that_o be_v the_o true_a light_n not_o this_o or_o this_o be_v not_o as_o christ_n be_v now_o in_o heaven_n nor_o as_o present_v with_o the_o evangelist_n john_n and_o the_o then_o saint_n but_o it_o point_v at_o christ_n appearance_n in_o the_o flesh_n very_o notable_a indeed_o and_o we_o will_v not_o let_v it_o slip_v our_o observation_n if_o the_o word_n that_o make_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n be_v that_o true_a light_n as_o sai_z j._n faldo_n himself_o p._n 84_o then_o can_v it_o never_o be_v restrain_v to_o that_o appearance_n as_o the_o beginning_n or_o end_n of_o it_o nay_o the_o evangelist_n be_v not_o yet_o come_v so_o much_o as_o to_o mention_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o manifestation_n in_o flesh_n and_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v j._n faldo_n the_o verse_n concern_v the_o word_n as_o creator_n and_o not_o as_o redeemer_n which_o he_o stint_v to_o his_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n see_v pag._n 89._o but_o by_o his_o interpretation_n that_o be_v not_o relative_a to_o his_o appearance_n in_o the_o flesh_n but_o rather_o to_o the_o word_n which_o be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n as_o p._n 84._o and_o so_o the_o spanish_a translation_n have_v it_o that_o word_n be_v the_o true_a light_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o either_o the_o word_n be_v not_o before_o that_o appearance_n or_o if_o it_o be_v be_v that_o true_a light_n that_o true_a light_n be_v before_o that_o appearance_n and_o mankind_n be_v also_o antecedent_n to_o that_o manifestation_n may_v very_o well_o be_v say_v always_o to_o have_v be_v enlighten_v by_o that_o light_n for_o that_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v before_o that_o appearance_n &_o that_o true_a light_n which_o be_v the_o very_a life_n of_o the_o word_n or_o word_n itself_o shall_v be_v stint_v to_o that_o appearance_n be_v as_o absurd_a as_o any_o thing_n well_o can_v be_v again_o that_o we_o shall_v take_v it_o to_o deny_v christ_n now_o to_o be_v the_o true_a light_n that_o enlighten_v all_o because_o he_o be_v so_o be_v a_o strange_a impertinency_n and_o gross_a falsehood_n for_o then_o by_o good_a reason_n ought_v we_o to_o infer_v that_o because_o the_o word_n be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o now_o either_o with_o god_n or_o god_n be_v this_o your_o tertullus_n beside_o if_o we_o have_v nothing_o of_o this_o to_o offer_v the_o evangelist_n may_v very_o well_o refer_v to_o that_o appearance_n without_o any_o denial_n at_o all_o of_o a_o antecedent_n illumination_n it_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a break_v forth_o of_o the_o divine_a light_n and_o this_o be_v large_o acknowledge_v and_o prove_v in_o my_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n which_o have_v he_o consider_v but_o half_a as_o much_o as_o he_o importune_v we_o to_o have_v his_o own_o he_o may_v have_v save_v we_o the_o labour_n of_o this_o animadversion_n but_o god_n know_v it_o be_v our_o portion_n from_o many_o such_o like_a base_a and_o unworthy_a adversary_n every_o thing_n be_v a_o fault_n in_o a_o quaker_n and_o nothing_o in_o they_o we_o have_v great_a reason_n to_o despair_v of_o any_o good_a upon_o the_o most_o of_o they_o who_o spirit_n be_v so_o leaven_v into_o prejudice_n and_o revenge_n that_o not_o to_o bear_v their_o lie_n and_o to_o rebuke_v their_o slander_n be_v account_v scarce_o so_o tolerable_a as_o rail_a but_o with_o god_n the_o righteous_a judge_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n do_v we_o leave_v our_o cause_n to_o be_v by_o he_o plead_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o that_o crooked_a and_o perverse_a generation_n §_o 8._o upon_o the_o second_o scripture_n which_o he_o pretend_v we_o abuse_v to_o wit_n 94._o but_o what_o say_v it_o the_o word_n be_v nigh_o 3._o thou_o even_o in_o thy_o mouth_n and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o faith_n which_o we_o preach_v and_o which_o he_o say_v we_o join_v with_o the_o first_o of_o john_n in_o the_o beginning_n be_v the_o word_n etc._n etc._n he_o observe_v thus_o much_o in_o short_a the_o apostle_n allude_v to_o the_o word_n of_o moses_n in_o deuteronomy_n but_o the_o word_n be_v very_o nigh_o unto_o thou_o in_o thy_o mouth_n 14._o and_o in_o thy_o heart_n that_o thou_o may_v do_v it_o that_o be_v say_v he_o the_o law_n statute_n and_o commandment_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n make_v the_o have_v the_o word_n in_o the_o heart_n to_o be_v a_o have_v they_o without_o book_n or_o by_o rote_n as_o he_o express_v it_o but_o none_o of_o the_o most_o mistake_v of_o our_o modern_a socinian_o the_o great_a contra-spiritualists_a man_n of_o our_o time_n i_o be_o persuade_v can_v have_v give_v we_o a_o more_o dark_a and_o carnal_a interpretation_n of_o the_o place_n for_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o word_n which_o give_v faith_n and_o in_o which_o faith_n shall_v be_v it_o be_v call_v the_o word_n of_o reconciliation_n and_o regeneration_n which_o can_v be_v no_o other_o word_n ●●en_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o begin_n with_o god_n that_o by_o which_o god_n utter_v and_o declare_v his_o mind_n to_o the_o son_n and_o daughter_n of_o man_n in_o all_o age_n that_o word_n who_o life_n be_v and_o be_v the_o light_n of_o man_n to_o make_v the_o apostle_n to_o have_v preach_v another_o word_n be_v as_o much_o as_o in_o he_o lie_v to_o render_v he_o no_o gospel-preacher_n beside_o that_o word_n mention_v by_o moses_n can_v not_o
to_o be_v god_n be_v not_o like_a to_o be_v 120._o much_o the_o wise_a for_o what_o they_o read_v this_o cut_v off_o all_o hope_n of_o j._n faldo_n being_n wise_a for_o i_o suppose_v he_o read_v what_o he_o write_v as_o blind_a as_o he_o be_v however_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o other_o i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o reconcile_v this_o seem_a contrariety_n in_o the_o first_o passage_n he_o grant_v that_o within_o man_n be_v not_o mention_v and_o by_o his_o silence_n i_o suppose_v i_o may_v conclude_v it_o orthodox_n for_o no_o man_n that_o believe_v scripture_n will_v dare_v to_o deny_v that_o god_n be_v light_a that_o every_o man_n be_v enlighten_v by_o he_o and_o that_o by_o he_o who_o be_v call_v light_n all_o thing_n be_v uphold_v and_o that_o he_o alone_o be_v saviour_n a_o doctrine_n j._n faldo_n teach_v pag._n 84._o 85_o 89._o to_o the_o other_o scrap_n of_o matter_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o never_o do_v do_v nor_o shall_v assert_v the_o god_n that_o make_v heaven_n and_o earth_n to_o be_v comprehendable_a within_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n no_o it_o be_v more_o impossible_a then_o that_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n can_v be_v contain_v within_o the_o body_n of_o any_o individual_a person_n but_o that_o god_n who_o be_v the_o great_a sun_n of_o righteousness_n do_v as_o true_o cause_v his_o light_n spiritual_a to_o arise_v upon_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n as_o his_o sun_n natural_a upon_o their_o body_n and_o as_o what_o knowledge_n we_o have_v of_o the_o natural_a sun_n be_v by_o its_o light_n operation_n and_o effect_n upon_o the_o world_n so_o our_o knowledge_n of_o the_o eternal_a sun_n of_o righteousness_n god_n who_o be_v light_n and_o in_o who_o be_v no_o darkness_n at_o all_o be_v only_o and_o alone_o by_o his_o divine_a light_n operation_n and_o effect_n in_o and_o upon_o our_o understanding_n and_o conscience_n so_o that_o when_o we_o say_v that_o the_o light_n be_v within_o any_o we_o do_v not_o intend_v the_o whole_a be_v of_o light_n nor_o be_v it_o in_o this_o gross_a sense_n that_o g._n fox_n the_o young_a ever_o mean_v it_o but_o that_o he_o who_o be_v the_o eternal_a fountain_n of_o all_o life_n and_o sun_n of_o light_n cause_v his_o light_n to_o visit_v the_o heart_n and_o shine_v into_o the_o conscience_n of_o all_o mankind_n as_o well_o of_o such_o as_o rebel_v against_o it_o and_o scorn_v it_o to_o reprove_v they_o as_o those_o who_o receive_v it_o and_o glad_o submit_v to_o it_o to_o direct_v and_o justify_v they_o wherefore_o we_o utter_o deny_v that_o the_o manifestation_n in_o man_n strict_o consider_v be_v the_o most-high_a god_n but_o a_o manifestation_n of_o or_o from_o god_n by_o the_o inshining_n of_o his_o bless_a light_n and_o we_o can_v be_v say_v to_o worship_n the_o manifestation_n but_o that_o eternal_a god_n which_o be_v light_n that_o be_v thereby_o manifest_v and_o all_o worship_n otherwise_o found_v be_v not_o of_o god_n nor_o please_v to_o he_o but_o of_o the_o invention_n of_o man_n which_o he_o will_v confound_v and_o this_o scripture_n and_o reason_n be_v ready_a to_o defend_v scorn_v the_o light_n in_o they_o and_o not_o own_v the_o light_n in_o they_o by_o our_o adversary_n so_o strong_o insist_v upon_o be_v no_o more_o then_o scorn_v and_o disow_v he_o who_o be_v the_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o they_o and_o that_o give_v light_a to_o they_o what_o very_a vanity_n then_o be_v all_o his_o boast_n and_o how_o do_v his_o charge_n retort_v upon_o himself_o but_o that_o we_o may_v send_v it_o quite_o back_o to_o the_o pit_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v le_fw-fr we_o hear_v how_o he_o prove_v our_o belief_n of_o the_o soul_n to_o be_v god_n which_o he_o begin_v to_o do_v with_o no_o small_a show_n of_o assurance_n that_o he_o shall_v cleaverly_o compass_v his_o end_n §_o 2._o every_o man_n have_v that_o which_o be_v one_o in_o union_n and_o like_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n even_o as_o good_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n 123._o according_a to_o its_o measure_n e._n burrough_n true_a faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o purpose_n can_v any_o man_n be_v so_o stupid_a as_o to_o think_v that_o e._n burrough_n ever_o intend_v the_o soul_n of_o man_n that_o pure_o &_o simple_o constitute_v he_o such_o for_o he_o be_v speak_v of_o that_o universal_a grace_n light_n and_o spirit_n which_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o all_o whereby_o they_o may_v be_v lead_v to_o eternal_a felicity_n and_o unless_o he_o will_v say_v that_o a_o measure_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n a_o scripture-phrase_n which_o god_n have_v give_v to_o every_o man_n to_o profit_n with_o be_v not_o in_o union_n with_o christ_n nor_o as_o good_a in_o kind_a as_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n which_o our_o adversary_n say_v be_v god_n it_o will_v evident_o follow_v that_o what_o e._n b._n write_v be_v find_v and_o scriptural_a however_o this_o make_v nothing_o for_o our_o adversary_n present_a charge_n but_o he_o end_v not_o with_o he_o now_o my_o soul_n and_o spirit_n be_v centre_v in_o its_o own_o be_v with_o god_n and_o this_o 123._o form_n of_o person_n must_v return_v from_o whence_o it_o be_v take_v f_o howgil_n test_n of_o e._n b._n this_o expression_n be_v deliver_v to_o we_o by_o francis_n howgil_n as_o edward_n burorghs_n a_o little_a before_o his_o departure_n in_o that_o sensible_a testimony_n he_o give_v to_o the_o late_a life_n labour_n and_o death_n of_o that_o worthy_a painful_a &_o effectual_a labourer_n and_o his_o companion_n in_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n but_o to_o help_v j._n faldo_n intellect_n that_o they_o may_v no_o more_o look_v asquint_o upon_o such_o weighty_a die_a word_n let_v he_o know_v that_o e._n b._n speak_v not_o of_o god_n as_o his_o soul_n be_v by_o nature_n or_o as_o of_o that_o very_o be_v for_o so_o the_o soul_n will_v be_v god_n indeed_o and_o yet_o subject_a to_o all_o those_o pollution_n and_o punishment_n which_o do_v and_o will_v attend_v wicked_a man_n blasphemy_n with_o a_o witness_n but_o god_n as_o that_o be_v which_o by_o regeneration_n the_o new_a nature_n and_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n all_o the_o righteous_a soul_n be_v gather_v too_o and_o centre_v in_o as_o their_o everlasting_a habitation_n and_o life_n eternal_a the_o world_n may_v perceive_v with_o ease_n at_o what_o rate_n and_o what_o term_n j._n faldo_n swagger_v over_o the_o quaker_n but_o let_v he_o boast_v that_o put_v off_o his_o armour_n §_o 3_o the_o next_o person_n he_o single_v out_o be_v g._n fox_n thus_o answer_v a_o priest_n but_o 123._o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o saint_n and_o dwell_v in_o they_o and_o he_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o reprobate_n and_o out_o of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n great_a mist_n pag._n 16._o i_o perceive_v j._n faldo_n will_v rather_o quarrel_v scripture_n when_o he_o meet_v it_o in_o a_o quaker_n book_n than_o not_o have_v something_o against_o they_o but_o certain_o if_o that_o be_v the_o way_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o believe_v the_o soul_n be_v god_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n and_o christ_n be_v in_o the_o saint_n what_o will_v become_v of_o the_o scripture_n will_v they_o escape_v j._n falao_n heavy_a censure_n who_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v in_o his_o saint_n the_o hope_n of_o glory_n i_o in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o i_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o god_n be_v with_o man_n and_o he_o will_v dwell_v in_o they_o must_v every_o thing_n that_o be_v in_o another_o be_v necessary_o of_o that_o in_o which_o it_o be_v but_o i_o hope_v his_o heat_n be_v abate_v he_o may_v discern_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o attempt_n against_o we_o to_o proceed_v i._o pennington_n he_o also_o bring_v in_o to_o make_v good_a his_o charge_n how_o serviceable_a he_o may_v prove_v will_v better_o appear_v when_o we_o 126._o have_v examine_v the_o passage_n that_o which_o the_o lord_n from_o heaven_n beget_v of_o his_o own_o image_n and_o likeness_n of_o his_o own_o substance_n of_o his_o own_o seed_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n and_o pure_a life_n quest_n 27._o but_o j._n faldo_n have_v miss_v his_o aim_n and_o mistake_v his_o man_n for_o i._o p._n be_v not_o now_o speak_v of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n simple_o consider_v but_o of_o that_o divine_a life_n nature_n image_n and_o birth_n that_o god_n by_o his_o word_n of_o life_n create_v or_o beget_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o those_o who_o once_o live_v not_o to_o god_n but_o themselves_o bear_v the_o image_n of_o the_o earthly_a and_o do_v turn_v at_o his_o reproof_n to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o life_n this_o will_v not_o move_v the_o business_n one_o jot_n further_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o our_o enemy_n charge_n §_o 4._o we_o will_v close_v this_o point_n with_o a_o passage_n out_o of_o samuel_n fisher_n
apostolical_a or_o primitive_a christianity_n and_o this_o shall_v close_v our_o chapter_n and_o my_o honest_a and_o clear_a answer_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o his_o discourse_n which_o make_v up_o more_o than_o three_o part_n of_o four_o of_o his_o uncharitable_a and_o disingenuous_a treatise_n a_o appendix_n be_v a_o reply_n to_o that_o last_o part_n of_o his_o book_n which_o pretend_v to_o answer_v the_o first_o of_o my_o spirit_n of_o truth_n vindicated_n entitle_v a_o examination_n of_o the_o first_o part_n of_o w._n p_n spirit_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n with_o a_o rebuke_n of_o his_o exorbitance_n §_o 1._o though_o there_o have_v be_v no_o adversary_n which_o have_v fall_v to_o my_o share_n that_o have_v show_v more_o incivility_n and_o less_o learning_n a_o thing_n he_o pretend_v to_o in_o answer_n to_o any_o of_o my_o book_n than_o j._n faldo_n have_v do_v in_o this_o last_o part_n of_o his_o quakerism_n no_o christianity_n yet_o how_o little_a soever_o i_o have_v at_o least_o to_o bestow_v upon_o he_o i_o desire_v to_o manifest_v more_o temper_n truth_n and_o civility_n then_o to_o recompense_v he_o with_o that_o illbred_n language_n those_o school-puns_a and_o loose_v irreverent_a if_o not_o profane_a say_n amid_o the_o most_o weighty_a matter_n it_o have_v please_v he_o to_o give_v i_o for_o a_o great_a share_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o book_n i_o will_v rather_o betake_v myself_o to_o single_a out_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o objection_n if_o any_o there_o be_v and_o bestow_v my_o time_n in_o vindication_n of_o the_o truth_n then_o to_o rail_v revile_v undervalue_v and_o stigmatize_v with_o i_o know_v not_o how_o many_o disgraceful_a epithet_n a_o way_n that_o never_o yet_o reach_v into_o any_o man_n conscience_n and_o this_o ken_n i_o have_v of_o j._n faldo_n that_o all_o his_o discourse_n of_o christianity_n interline_v with_o so_o much_o babble_v prattle_v and_o base_a abuse_n will_v never_o move_v a_o sober_a turk_n and_o a_o banian_a be_v a_o saint_n to_o a_o congregation_n of_o such_o kind_n of_o christian_n §_o 2._o he_o tell_v i_o he_o expect_v great_a thing_n when_o first_o he_o set_v about_o to_o read_v my_o book_n and_o begin_v to_o stagger_v in_o his_o mind_n as_o to_o that_o ingenious_a piece_n call_v 2._o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o quaker_n try_v or_o to_o that_o purpose_n but_o know_v himself_o better_a i_o hope_v he_o will_v excuse_v i_o if_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v he_o he_o never_o have_v that_o opinion_n of_o any_o thing_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o a_o people_n he_o testify_v such_o irreconcilable_a hatred_n to_o which_o be_v none_o of_o the_o mean_a blot_n in_o his_o scutcheon_n pen_n the_o answerer_n if_o he_o be_v not_o furnish_v with_o forehead_n and_o tale_n beyond_o measure_n his_o pamphlet_n will_v have_v have_v nothing_o remarkable_a in_o it_o whether_o this_o be_v most_o a_o lie_n or_o a_o abuse_n i_o know_v not_o perhaps_o the_o reader_n may_v but_o sure_o i_o be_o there_o be_v more_o of_o both_o then_o stand_v with_o true_a christianity_n to_o give_v a_o comprehensive_a under_o value_n of_o what_o he_o can_v never_o answer_v which_o perhaps_o go_v for_o one_o among_o such_o as_o have_v faith_n in_o he_o or_o know_v no_o better_o §_o 3._o but_o he_o be_v angry_a at_o my_o state_v the_o question_n thus_o whether_o god_n holy_a and_o unerring_a spirit_n be_v or_o shall_v be_v the_o proper_a judge_n of_o truth_n rule_n 3._o of_o faith_n and_o guide_n of_o life_n among_o man_n especial_o under_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o bless_a gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n or_o no._n i_o affirm_v it_o and_o proceed_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n upon_o which_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v his_o reflection_n and_o from_o hence_o make_v a_o judgement_n what_o that_o spirit_n must_v be_v that_o shall_v so_o pretend_v to_o answer_v my_o spirit_n of_o truth_n etc._n etc._n consider_v his_o word_n forego_v which_o be_v too_o many_o and_o too_o worthless_a to_o transcribe_v and_o what_o he_o drive_v at_o in_o the_o handle_n of_o this_o question_n i_o never_o read_v one_o so_o lame_a and_o deform_a in_o my_o life_n come_v forth_o with_o such_o state_n and_o confidence_n and_o such_o a_o train_n and_o rout_n of_o medium_n as_o deform_a as_o itself_o there_o be_v in_o it_o neither_o logic_n nor_o honesty_n certain_o if_o he_o have_v not_o turn_v quaker_n and_o in_o that_o fall_n put_v all_o out_o of_o joint_n he_o can_v not_o likely_a after_o such_o good_a nurse_n have_v be_v thus_o lamentable_o cripple_v in_o his_o intellect_n and_o somewhat_o beside_o one_o will_v think_v the_o strain_n of_o this_o comment_n be_v answer_n to_o itself_o why_o so_o much_o flourish_n and_o little_o do_v must_v noise_n supply_v the_o absence_n of_o reason_n and_o base_a revile_v go_v for_o confutation_n shallow_a man_n what_o lameness_n be_v there_o in_o the_o question_n i_o profess_v i_o see_v none_o nor_o have_v he_o so_o much_o as_o point_v at_o one_o limb_n that_o be_v defective_a in_o all_o this_o rabble_n of_o reflection_n i_o have_v neither_o logic_n nor_o honesty_n it_o have_v be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o he_o have_v show_v more_o of_o both_o in_o say_v so_o or_o hold_v his_o tongue_n but_o my_o turn_n quaker_n have_v put_v something_o out_o of_o joint_n but_o what_o i_o know_v not_o unless_o the_o good_a opinion_n i_o once_o undeserved_a have_v of_o such_o mountebank_n priest_n but_o give_v he_o his_o due_n he_o be_v the_o first_o man_n that_o ever_o acquaint_v i_o with_o the_o ground_n of_o cripling_n i_o be_v never_o yet_o wise_a enough_o to_o think_v it_o a_o natural_a effect_n of_o ill-nursing_a only_o through_o carelessness_n in_o nurse_n fall_n and_o the_o like_a have_v bring_v it_o i_o perceive_v he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o well_o wisher_n to_o physic_n by_o his_o hard_a word_n ebullition_n but_o a_o small_a pretender_n to_o chirurgery_n by_o his_o term_n out_o of_o joint_n when_o he_o have_v give_v better_a proof_n of_o his_o well-setting_a to_o right_n his_o own_o disjointed_a or_o if_o he_o will_v dislocate_v cause_n with_o that_o of_o chistianity_n he_o may_v better_o set_v up_o for_o a_o religious_a bonesetter_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o can_v pass_v but_o for_o a_o pretender_n but_o i_o have_v no_o logic_n and_o why_o because_o i_o say_v pag._n 37._o there_o be_v no_o more_o difference_n to_o i_o between_o a_o judge_n rule_n and_o gaide_n then_o 4._o essential_o there_o can_v be_v in_o the_o wisdom_n justice_n and_o holiness_n of_o god_n he_o shall_v have_v add_v say_v j._n faldo_n nor_o between_o truth_n faith_n and_o life_n among_o men._n i_o will_v know_v of_o any_o man_n that_o can_v think_v himself_o capable_a of_o judge_v in_o the_o plain_a case_n if_o this_o be_v a_o answer_n to_o my_o argument_n i_o say_v then_o i_o do_v again_o that_o there_o be_v no_o 31._o more_o difference_n in_o they_o respect_v the_o principle_n then_o essential_o there_o can_v be_v in_o the_o wisdom_n justice_n and_o holiness_n of_o god_n which_o be_v but_o so_o many_o word_n to_o express_v the_o perfection_n of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o be_v for_o he_o be_v all_o and_o that_o in_o all_o wise_a in_o be_v just_o and_o both_o in_o be_v holy_a they_o be_v inseparable_a for_o that_o which_o give_v i_o a_o right_a sense_n or_o judgement_n of_o truth_n from_o error_n be_v as_o well_o to_o i_o a_o rule_n what_o i_o shall_v believe_v or_o disbelieve_v and_o a_o guide_n what_o i_o shall_v practice_v or_o not_o practice_v as_o at_o first_o it_o be_v my_o judge_n of_o what_o be_v truth_n from_o what_o be_v error_n all_o which_o sober_a and_o indeed_o unanswerable_a argue_n he_o think_v fit_a to_o overlook_a which_o be_v very_o disingenuous_a i_o say_v that_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o be_v a_o judge_n be_v a_o rule_n and_o guide_n even_o in_o that_o very_a act_n when_o it_o be_v a_o judge_n and_o that_o avoidable_a therefore_o to_o distinguish_v they_o be_v frivolous_a and_o to_o maintain_v one_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n and_o another_o a_o judge_n be_v absurd_a and_o heterodox_n for_o his_o addition_n it_o be_v not_o hard_a to_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v more_o difference_n between_o truth_n faith_n and_o life_n for_o one_o may_v be_v without_o the_o other_o two_o i_o mean_v truth_n abstract_o but_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v understand_v of_o truth_n receive_v into_o the_o heart_n i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o affinity_n between_o truth_n true_a faith_n and_o a_o heavenly_a life_n that_o they_o follow_v each_o other_o almost_o at_o a_o instant_n and_o can_v be_v separate_v from_o each_o other_o §_o 4._o but_o he_o be_v angry_a that_o i_o shall_v use_v these_o word_n of_o lord_n
government_n and_o consequent_o they_o have_v as_o true_o their_o measure_n of_o the_o holy_a unerring_a spirit_n as_o have_v moses_n joshua_n etc._n etc._n they_o §_o 7._o the_o three_o scripture_n he_o will_v unconcern_v i_o in_o be_v this_o and_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a give_v they_o understanding_n upon_o 12._o this_o he_o ask_v i_o this_o question_n but_o do_v this_o encourage_v man_n to_o cast_v off_o all_o external_n mean_v and_o the_o use_v of_o their_o reason_n nothing_o less_o say_v he_o nothing_o less_o say_v i_o too_o and_o who_o can_v help_v it_o if_o he_o understand_v i_o so_o but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v as_o base_a as_o base_a can_v be_v he_o ask_v this_o question_n as_o the_o result_n of_o my_o argument_n upon_o the_o place_n and_o never_o yet_o answer_v it_o at_o all_o but_o i_o can_v help_v it_o if_o i_o faldo_n will_v render_v i_o a_o fool_n that_o he_o may_v show_v himself_o wise_a i_o confess_v he_o want_v some_o such_o fool_n for_o his_o work_n and_o his_o own_o weakness_n may_v tempt_v he_o to_o that_o dishonesty_n only_o i_o will_v have_v the_o reader_n know_v that_o reason_n memory_n and_o understanding_n be_v all_o useful_a servant_n we_o deny_v they_o not_o a_o place_n in_o the_o heavenly_a work_n but_o as_o instrument_n not_o agent_n what_o shall_v not_o move_v of_o themselves_o to_o religious_a worship_n but_o in_o and_o by_o the_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n §_o 8._o the_o next_o scripture_n he_o think_v i_o abuse_v be_v this_o whither_o shall_v i_o go_v from_o thy_o spirit_n or_o whither_o shall_v i_o flee_v from_o thy_o presence_n 13._o from_o whence_o say_v he_o you_o can_v scribble_v thus_o if_o god_n unerring_a spirit_n be_v so_o nigh_o and_o the_o sense_n or_o it_o so_o certain_a it_o must_v be_v either_o to_o reprove_v for_o evil_a do_v or_o to_o inform_v uphold_v lead_v and_o preserve_v in_o reference_n to_o all_o good_a now_o in_o which_o of_o the_o two_o sense_n it_o shall_v be_v take_v the_o presence_n of_o god_n eternal_a spirit_n &_o his_o be_v the_o saint_n instructor_n judge_n rule_n and_o guide_n be_v evident_o deduceable_a from_o the_o word_n rudis_fw-la indigestaque_fw-la mole_n worse_o than_o ever_o bear_v bring_v forth_o her_o cub_n say_v j._n falde_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o hear_v he_o further_o which_o with_o her_o lick_n may_v be_v bring_v into_o some_o shape_n but_o your_o product_n be_v so_o defective_a both_o in_o truth_n right_a reason_n and_o syntax_n and_o sense_n that_o it_o be_v no_o dis-reputation_n to_o your_o adversary_n to_o be_v confound_v by_o they_o a_o notable_a excuse_n for_o no_o answer_n but_o silence_n which_o be_v always_o count_v answer_n enough_o by_o he_o that_o have_v never_o another_o to_o give_v again_o it_o be_v a_o effectual_a but_o a_o impudent_a course_n to_o silence_n all_o the_o world_n from_o oppose_v you_o by_o write_v such_o confident_a confuse_a nonsense_n we_o may_v suppose_v then_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o confuse_a sense_n yet_o again_o be_v it_o not_o for_o the_o sake_n of_o many_o who_o conceit_n your_o infallibility_n which_o you_o be_v here_o so_o blind_o plead_v for_o i_o will_v as_o soon_o abandon_v my_o time_n nonsense_n to_o dispute_v witha_v distract_v man_n in_o his_o rave_v fit_v as_o with_o w._n penn_n till_o he_o come_v better_o to_o himself_o than_o i_o find_v he_o in_o his_o pamphlet_n and_o reader_n can_v thou_o think_v that_o my_o adversary_n have_v take_v a_o fair_a or_o probable_a way_n to_o bring_v i_o to_o myself_o again_o who_o best_a argument_n be_v sordid_a ill-bred_a name_n downright_a lie_n and_o slander_n i_o challenge_v any_o man_n that_o can_v sober_o pretend_v to_o religion_n to_o so_o much_o as_o abet_v this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v against_o i_o and_o the_o way_n i_o profess_v if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v christian_a as_o it_o be_v antichristian_a be_v i_o a_o turk_n i_o shall_v take_v great_a care_n i_o come_v not_o within_o the_o very_a suburb_n of_o so_o base_a a_o profession_n where_o be_v j._n faldo_n read_n learn_v conscience_n in_o this_o one_o passage_n i_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o attempt_v the_o defence_n of_o my_o argument_n for_o it_o be_v to_o say_v it_o need_v my_o assistance_n or_o that_o my_o adversary_n have_v do_v something_o to_o endanger_v its_o security_n who_o have_v so_o plead_v the_o sobriety_n and_o truth_n of_o it_o by_o a_o opposition_n that_o can_v become_v none_o but_o a_o creature_n as_o for-lorn_a of_o all_o honesty_n as_o himself_o that_o it_o be_v a_o credit_n to_o my_o cause_n almost_o equal_a with_o our_o clearness_n that_o so_o much_o rancour_n and_o ignorance_n set_v themselves_o against_o it_o this_o be_v no_o less_o man_n than_o your_o vaunt_v struting_n j._n faldo_n his_o own_o self_n who_o think_v as_o well_o of_o himself_o and_o deserve_v as_o little_a of_o it_o from_o other_o man_n as_o any_o person_n that_o have_v come_v within_o my_o ken_n a_o long_a time_n in_o short_a whether_o i_o be_o out_o of_o my_o wit_n or_o he_o out_o of_o all_o bound_n of_o good_a sense_n or_o manner_n shall_v be_v leave_v with_o the_o reader_n to_o determine_v for_o my_o part_n if_o this_o be_v the_o way_n he_o intend_v to_o take_v to_o confute_v his_o opposer_n he_o be_v like_a to_o answer_v himself_o and_o give_v he_o his_o due_n he_o be_v as_o good_a at_o it_o as_o most_o man_n i_o know_v and_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o he_o may_v increase_v in_o that_o science_n §_o 9_o but_o he_o tell_v i_o that_o my_o main_a fallacy_n be_v these_o two_o first_o from_o a_o infallible_a spirit-teaching_a to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o subject_n 20._o in_o which_o the_o spirit_n dwell_v as_o a_o teacher_n next_o from_o the_o spirit_n be_v teach_v to_o its_o immediate_a and_o peculiar_a teach_v if_o the_o first_o be_v true_a without_o any_o consideration_n have_v to_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o creature_n and_o his_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n i_o will_v yield_v it_o to_o he_o that_o i_o be_o mistake_v though_o not_o fall_v acious_o that_o imply_v a_o design_n to_o do_v so_o which_o i_o have_v not_o and_o for_o the_o second_o i_o be_o content_a to_o stand_v by_o the_o charge_n not_o of_o a_o fallacy_n but_o our_o faith_n and_o such_o as_o be_v defensible_a both_o from_o scripture_n and_o reason_n for_o if_o the_o truth_n of_o no_o argument_n i_o have_v make_v nor_o any_o expression_n that_o have_v fall_v from_o i_o do_v so_o much_o as_o imply_v his_o charge_n let_v he_o not_o be_v angry_a with_o i_o that_o i_o say_v he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o base_a perverter_n among_o man_n and_o if_o that_o very_a passage_n by_o which_o he_o hope_v to_o prove_v this_o great_a deceit_n of_o i_o be_v find_v mute_a in_o the_o case_n i_o hope_v no_o reader_n will_v be_v so_o unjust_a as_o to_o refuse_v i_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o be_v a_o unfair_a adversary_n §_o 10._o the_o first_o place_n he_o think_v to_o make_v for_o he_o be_v this_o quench_v not_o the_o spirit_n on_o which_o i_o argue_v thus_o those_o to_o who_o he_o give_v the_o caution_n have_v the_o spirit_n if_o those_o can_v not_o quench_v it_o that_o have_v it_o not_o consequent_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o without_o a_o unerring_a spirit_n to_o which_o he_o say_v but_o suppose_v they_o have_v the_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o miserable_a erroneous_a and_o weak_a conclusion_n that_o they_o be_v infallible_a how_o far_o this_o make_v for_o he_o or_o rather_o how_o great_o he_o have_v mistake_v i_o be_v evident_a if_o it_o may_v be_v consider_v that_o there_o be_v not_o one_o word_n of_o any_o man_n be_v be_v infallible_a in_o all_o my_o argument_n only_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v a_o infallible_a spirit_n not_o of_o their_o own_o or_o from_o themselves_o but_o from_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v only_o so_o in_o their_o knowledge_n or_o determination_n from_o the_o unerring_a guidance_n of_o god_n spirit_n unless_o they_o either_o be_v without_o the_o anoint_v or_o that_o the_o anoint_v be_v fallible_a both_o which_o be_v contradict_v by_o the_o apostle_n john_n in_o that_o note_a passage_n 1._o 2._o 27._o so_o that_o my_o adversary_n be_v manifest_o guilty_a of_o that_o fault_n he_o do_v with_o no_o small_a aggravation_n charge_v upon_o i_o viz_o that_o from_o my_o argue_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o god_n to_o direct_v they_o from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o their_o quench_v what_o they_o have_v not_o he_o make_v i_o to_o conclude_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o they_o be_v lead_v by_o it_o or_o no_o as_o if_o i_o intend_v to_o plead_v the_o infallibility_n
rich_a benefice_n full_a and_o stately_a live_n many_o of_o you_o grow_v dry_a again_o be_v turn_v to_o pillar_n of_o salt_n my_o soul_n wander_v for_o rest_n and_o at_o last_o find_v it_o in_o that_o tender_a holy_a pure_a principle_n of_o life_n and_o righteousness_n which_o have_v be_v wont_a from_o a_o youth_n to_o attend_v i_o mollify_v my_o heart_n allay_v my_o affection_n and_o preserve_v i_o out_o of_o gross_a pollution_n which_o while_o such_o of_o you_o in_o some_o measure_n keep_v that_o be_v now_o manifest_o go_v from_o it_o there_o be_v another_o kind_a of_o spirit_n that_o rule_v in_o you_o and_o it_o be_v to_o this_o first_o love_n and_o work_v we_o desire_v your_o return_n such_o of_o you_o who_o day_n be_v not_o utter_o pass_v over_o your_o head_n and_o what_o any_o shall_v think_v of_o i_o as_o this_o uncharitable_a adversary_n have_v express_v himself_o as_o that_o i_o shall_v seek_v credit_n a_o party_n etc._n etc._n i_o heed_v not_o for_o what_o i_o be_o at_o this_o day_n i_o be_o by_o through_z and_o to_o god_n almighty_a the_o righteous_a lord_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n alone_o it_o be_v base_o do_v of_o any_o man_n that_o be_v a_o professor_n who_o pretend_v to_o some_o acquaintance_n with_o tender_a conscience_n and_o those_o trial_n that_o attend_v it_o to_o censure_v another_o man_n change_n and_o affliction_n for_o counterfeit_n and_o mere_a design_n oh_o the_o righteous_a god_n will_v reckon_v with_o such_o uncharitable_a disingenuous_a perverse_a spirit_n in_o the_o day_n that_o hasten_v to_o try_v all_o and_o then_o will_v he_o recompense_v this_o ungodly_a censurer_n of_o a_o innocent_a stranger_n to_o he_o who_o be_v i_o upon_o my_o trial_n at_o the_o bar_n of_o his_o own_o party_n there_o be_v of_o they_o enough_o to_o give_v evidence_n of_o another_o spirit_n then_o that_o of_o vain_a glory_n or_o self_n for_o where_o none_o of_o these_o thing_n have_v induce_v but_o sharpeness_n and_o severity_n have_v meet_v i_o there_o have_v be_v a_o faithful_a answer_v of_o conviction_n to_o some_o of_o their_o knowledge_n who_o i_o believe_v to_o be_v better_a man_n then_o to_o refuse_v i_o a_o full_a testimonial_a if_o seek_v for_o but_o as_o i_o shall_v not_o think_v myself_o so_o deep_o engage_v or_o my_o reputation_n so_o shake_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o thousand_o as_o to_o need_v or_o desire_v it_o by_o any_o power_n or_o force_n j._n faldo_n can_v attack_v i_o with_o so_o shall_v i_o leave_v the_o concern_v of_o god_n truth_n the_o innocency_n of_o his_o people_n in_o general_n and_o my_o own_o in_o particular_a to_o his_o holy_a wisdom_n and_o providence_n who_o we_o be_v well_o satisfy_v will_v plead_v our_o cause_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o ten_o thousand_o to_o the_o shame_n and_o utter_v confusion_n of_o all_o our_o obstinate_a adversary_n a_o key_n open_v a_o way_n to_o every_o common_a understanding_n whereby_o to_o discern_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o quaker_n faith_n doctrine_n and_o practice_n and_o the_o pervertion_n and_o traducing_n of_o their_o several_a adversary_n reader_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n more_o indiscreet_a then_o for_o people_n to_o deny_v what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v it_o have_v be_v our_o unhappiness_n far_o more_o than_o all_o that_o our_o adversary_n have_v be_v able_a to_o say_v against_o we_o that_o hitherto_o we_o remain_v unknown_a by_o those_o who_o yet_o stick_v not_o to_o condemn_v we_o i_o will_v confess_v that_o our_o principle_n as_o disguise_v and_o misrepresent_v in_o the_o world_n have_v give_v offence_n or_o rather_o those_o who_o have_v so_o besmear_v they_o nor_o indeed_o can_v we_o be_v displease_v that_o people_n shall_v refuse_v they_o entertainment_n under_o those_o frightful_a vizard_n some_o make_v they_o to_o wear_v but_o it_o will_v be_v the_o business_n of_o this_o little_a key_n to_o explain_v the_o difficulty_n and_o give_v entrance_n into_o so_o clear_a and_o plain_a a_o understanding_n of_o the_o quaker_n principle_n from_o the_o priest_n perversion_n as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o with_o impartial_a inquirer_n it_o may_v be_v a_o end_v of_o much_o of_o that_o controversy_n which_o be_v now_o on_o foot_n between_o we_o and_o our_o opposer_n priest_n the_o quaker_n hold_n that_o the_o natural_a light_n in_o the_o conscience_n of_o every_o man_n in_o the_o world_n be_v sufficient_a to_o save_o all_o that_o follow_v it_o and_o so_o overthrow_v salvation_n by_o christ_n quaker_n this_o be_v false_a for_o our_o belief_n and_o assertion_n be_v that_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o word_n that_o be_v with_o god_n and_o be_v god_n and_o be_v so_o forever_o have_v enlighten_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n with_o his_o own_o light_n as_o he_o be_v that_o true_a light_n or_o such_o a_o light_n as_o there_o be_v no_o other_o to_o be_v compare_v to_o he_o which_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o the_o emphasis_n true_a and_o that_o such_o as_o follow_v the_o reproof_n conviction_n and_o leading_n of_o that_o light_n with_o which_o he_o enlighten_v the_o understanding_n and_o conscience_n of_o man_n shall_v not_o walk_v in_o darkness_n but_o have_v the_o light_n of_o life_n which_o life_n be_v a_o state_n of_o salvation_n for_o which_o end_n he_o be_v give_v i_o will_v give_v he_o for_o a_o light_n to_o lighten_v the_o gentile_n and_o for_o my_o salvation_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o earth_n so_o that_o we_o assert_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n sufficient_a not_o a_o natural_a outward_a light_n which_o may_v be_v proper_o so_o call_v in_o opposition_n to_o spiritual_a nor_o yet_o that_o bare_a understanding_n man_n have_v as_o a_o rational_a creature_n priest_n the_o quaker_n hold_v the_o light_n within_o they_o be_v god_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n so_o that_o every_o quaker_n have_v whole_a god_n christ_n and_o spirit_n in_o he_o which_o be_v gross_a blasphemy_n quaker_n this_o be_v also_o a_o mistake_n of_o our_o belief_n we_o never_o say_v that_o every_o illumination_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n be_v whole_a god_n christ_n or_o the_o spirit_n whereby_o to_o be_v guilty_a of_o the_o gross_a and_o blasphemous_a absurdity_n they_o will_v fasten_v on_o we_o but_o that_o god_n who_o be_v light_n or_o christ_n who_o be_v light_n the_o quicken_a spirit_n and_o god_n over_o all_o bless_v for_o ever_o have_v enlighten_v mankind_n with_o a_o save_a measure_n of_o light_n so_o that_o the_o illumination_n be_v from_o god_n or_o christ_n but_o not_o therefore_o whole_a god_n or_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o such_o harsh_a and_o un-scriptural_a word_n in_o our_o write_n it_o be_v only_o a_o frightful_a perversion_n of_o our_o enemy_n to_o bring_v a_o scandal_n upon_o our_o faith_n yet_o in_o a_o sense_n the_o scripture_n say_v i_o in_o they_o and_o they_o in_o i_o christ_n in_o we_o the_o hope_n of_o glory_n unless_o christ_n be_v in_o you_o you_o be_v reprobate_n i_o travel_v again_o a_o second_o time_n until_o christ_n be_v form_v in_o you_o if_o they_o who_o deny_v his_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n though_o high_a profess_v jew_n be_v anti-christs_n what_o must_v they_o be_v repute_v who_o as_o stiff_o disow_v his_o spiritual_a come_v formation_n and_o dominion_n in_o the_o soul_n certain_o though_o call_v christian_n yet_o no_o whit_n less_o anti-christs_n than_o the_o obstinate_a jew_n of_o old_a priest_n by_o the_o quaker_n doctrine_n every_o man_n must_v be_v save_v for_o every_o man_n be_v save_o enlighten_v quaker_n i_o deny_v that_o for_o though_o the_o light_n or_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v and_o do_v more_o or_o less_o appear_v to_o all_o man_n and_o that_o it_o bring_v salvation_n to_o as_o many_o as_o be_v teach_v by_o it_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n and_o worldly_a lust_n and_o to_o live_v sober_o and_o righteous_o and_o god_n likely_a in_o this_o present_a evil_a world_n yet_o it_o no_o way_n follow_v that_o man_n must_v obey_v and_o learn_v so_o to_o do_v whether_o they_o will_v or_o not_o god_n tender_v save_v light_n or_o grace_n to_o all_o he_o strive_v and_o plead_v with_o all_o but_o if_o they_o will_v not_o hearken_v his_o spirit_n grace_n or_o light_n be_v clear_a of_o their_o blood_n in_o short_a though_o man_n be_v light_v or_o visited_n with_o a_o save_a light_n or_o grace_n yet_o we_o never_o conclude_v nor_o be_v right_o concludable_a that_o such_o man_n must_v necessary_o be_v save_v whether_o they_o obey_v or_o rebel_n priest_n by_o the_o quaker_n light_n or_o spirit_n they_o may_v be_v move_v to_o murder_n adultery_n treason_n theft_n or_o any_o such_o like_a wickedness_n quaker_n this_o never_o be_v our_o doctrine_n for_o herein_o know_v we_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o motion_n of_o it_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o this_o world_n and_o its_o fruit_n that_o it_o condemn_v all_o ungodliness_n
the_o ready_a nay_o the_o only_a right_a way_n to_o come_v to_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n as_o he_o then_o appear_v and_o to_o receive_v any_o benefit_n by_o he_o and_o it_o be_v not_o another_o then_o that_o bless_a light_n power_n wisdom_n and_o eternal_a righteousness_n who_o then_o appear_v by_o who_o we_o have_v receive_v any_o true_a spiritual_a benefit_n how_o then_o can_v our_o ascribe_v particular_a salvation_n in_o this_o age_n to_o he_o who_o thus_o now_o appear_v to_o our_o soul_n render_v he_o no_o saviour_n in_o that_o or_o invalidate_v his_o then_o appearance_n who_o doctrine_n pierce_v who_o life_n preach_v who_o miracle_n astonish_v who_o blood_n atone_v and_o who_o death_n and_o resurrection_n confirm_v his_o then_o manifestation_n to_o be_v no_o less_o than_o god_n who_o be_v light_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n priest_n the_o quaker_n set_v up_o work_v and_o merit_v by_o work_n like_o the_o papist_n whereby_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v lay_v aside_o quaker_n we_o say_v that_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n can_v be_v without_o work_n no_o more_o than_o a_o body_n can_v live_v without_o a_o spirit_n nay_o by_o the_o comparison_n if_o they_o be_v separable_a work_v be_v compare_v to_o the_o spirit_n will_v have_v the_o better_a the_o very_a believe_v of_o any_o be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o mind_n and_o therefore_o a_o work_n to_o god_n and_o no_o soon_o be_v that_o faith_n beget_v but_o it_o fall_v to_o work_v which_o be_v both_o the_o nature_n and_o end_n of_o it_o nor_o do_v we_o say_v that_o our_o very_a best_o work_v proceed_v from_o true_a faith_n itself_o can_v merit_v no_o nor_o faith_n join_v with_o they_o all_o that_o man_n be_v capable_a of_o believe_v or_o perform_v can_v never_o merit_v there_o can_v be_v no_o proportion_n as_o there_o must_v be_v in_o merit_n between_o the_o best_a faith_n and_o work_v of_o three_o score_n and_o ten_o and_o eternal_a felicity_n wherefore_o all_o that_o man_n can_v do_v even_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n can_v never_o so_o merit_n but_o that_o right_a faith_n and_o good_a work_n which_o will_v follow_v it_o may_v and_o do_v obtain_v that_o bless_a immortality_n it_o please_v almighty_a god_n to_o give_v and_o privilege_v the_o son_n of_o man_n with_o who_o perform_v that_o necessary_a condition_n and_o that_o we_o ground_o and_o therefore_o bold_o affirm_v so_o that_o we_o deny_v all_o merit_n from_o the_o best_a of_o work_n especial_o by_o such_o as_o the_o papist_n be_v wont_a to_o conceive_v meritorious_a but_o as_o we_o on_o the_o one_o hand_n do_v stiff_o deny_v they_o so_o neither_o can_v we_o join_v with_o that_o lazy_a faith_n which_o work_v not_o let_v not_o good_a work_n make_v man_n papist_n because_o they_o make_v man_n christian_n i_o be_o sure_a believe_v and_o not_o work_v and_o conceive_v a_o salvation_n from_o wrath_n where_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n from_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o it_o be_v no_o whit_n less_o un-scriptural_a and_o abundant_o more_o pernicious_a and_o damnable_a bless_a be_v he_o that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o do_v it_o the_o blessing_n be_v to_o the_o doer_n priest_n they_o acknowledge_v no_o resurrection_n nor_o reward_n to_o come_v quaker_n in_o this_o also_o be_v we_o great_o abuse_v we_o deny_v not_o the_o resurrection_n but_o be_v cautious_a in_o express_v the_o manner_n be_v people_n angry_a with_o we_o for_o not_o believe_v or_o assert_v what_o be_v hide_v and_o they_o know_v not_o themselves_o thou_o fool_z be_v to_o the_o inquirer_n we_o shall_v be_v content_v with_o that_o body_n god_n will_v please_v to_o give_v we_o and_o think_v it_o to_o be_v both_o our_o duty_n and_o wisdom_n to_o acquiesce_v in_o that_o for_o eternal_a reward_n we_o not_o only_o own_v they_o but_o above_o all_o people_n have_v the_o great_a reason_n so_o to_o do_v for_o otherwise_o who_o so_o miserable_a do_v we_o inherit_v the_o reproach_n and_o suffer_v of_o all_o that_o have_v separate_v from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o be_v be_v the_o outcry_n that_o have_v be_v against_o the_o protestant_n by_o the_o papist_n and_o they_o against_o puritan_n brownist_n and_o other_o separatist_n fall_v upon_o we_o and_o shall_v we_o hold_v principle_n inconsistent_a with_o a_o eternal_a recompense_n of_o reward_n by_o no_o mean_n it_o be_v our_o faith_n and_o the_o contrary_a both_o a_o malicious_a and_o foolish_a suggestion_n of_o our_o adversary_n j._n faldo_n key_n prove_v defective_a i_o be_v not_o willing_a j._n faldo_n key_n shall_v go_v whole_o unconsidered_a the_o great_a part_n of_o which_o i_o here_o public_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v do_v we_o such_o right_n that_o if_o his_o explanation_n of_o many_o of_o our_o word_n be_v not_o true_a i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a to_o pronounce_v that_o the_o scripture_n must_v be_v false_a so_o agreeable_a to_o and_o consonant_n with_o scripture_n have_v he_o speak_v on_o our_o behalf_n and_o not_o only_o with_o scripture_n but_o that_o sense_n of_o it_o too_o which_o the_o best_a wise_a and_o most_o learned_a both_o of_o the_o father_n and_o first_o reformer_n have_v unanimous_o have_v and_o on_o which_o foundation_n in_o some_o measure_n both_o puritan_n and_o brownist_n begin_v their_o building_n low_a meek_n spiritual_a and_o plain_a as_o be_v yet_o well_o remember_v but_o how_o gross_o he_o have_v misrepresent_v we_o in_o other_o part_n &_o that_o the_o true_a may_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o false_a with_o any_o i_o will_v observe_v a_o few_o with_o what_o brevity_n i_o may_v j._n faldo_n pag._n 62._o assemble_v say_v he_o meet_v in_o spirit_n w._n penn._n this_o be_v not_o ingenuous_a for_o with_o such_o as_o know_v we_o not_o nor_o our_o practice_n it_o insinuate_v a_o denial_n of_o public_a worship_n which_o we_o ever_o own_a and_o hope_v shall_v to_o the_o end_n it_o be_v well_o know_v who_o have_v most_o shrink_v from_o that_o testimony_n and_o if_o j._n faldo_n mean_v that_o they_o do_v not_o worship_n in_o spirit_n because_o he_o make_v it_o criminal_a in_o we_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o say_v he_o and_o they_o be_v no_o gospel-worshipper_n for_o people_n must_v either_o worship_n in_o or_o out_o of_o god_n spirit_n if_o out_o of_o his_o spirit_n than_o no_o worship_n in_o spirit_n and_o truth_n but_o the_o device_n of_o their_o own_o heart_n if_o in_o the_o spirit_n than_o the_o quaker_n assemble_v as_o they_o shall_v do_v and_o j._n faldo_n be_v to_o be_v rebuke_v for_o little_a better_o than_o a_o upstart_n scoffer_n at_o assemble_v in_o spirit_n the_o once_o avow_a principle_n of_o the_o ancient_a brownist_n now_o call_v independent_o j._n f._n pag._n 69._o the_o will_z of_o the_o flesh_n say_v he_o all_z that_o be_v choose_v by_o man_n though_o he_o be_v thereby_o dispose_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n w._n p._n this_o be_v false_a many_o thing_n may_v be_v and_o be_v daily_o choose_v by_o man_n that_o be_v not_o in_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n nor_o by_o his_o own_o will_n much_o less_o when_o any_o shall_v be_v dispose_v thereto_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n reveal_v in_o the_o scripture_n a_o abominable_a untruth_n and_o so_o notorious_a that_o i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o only_o challenge_v he_o to_o produce_v any_o of_o we_o in_o proof_n of_o his_o exposition_n if_o he_o can_v otherwise_o he_o have_v slander_v we_o and_o our_o principle_n for_o the_o will_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v that_o which_o be_v quite_o contrary_a to_o god_n and_o inconsistent_a with_o the_o good_a of_o the_o creature_n j._n f._n pag._n 69._o state_n of_o glory_n say_v he_o the_o state_n of_o peace_n and_o joy_n result_v from_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o light_n within_o in_o this_o life_n w._n p._n it_o be_v true_a that_o glory_n be_v reveal_v from_o faith_n to_o faith_n in_o this_o life_n but_o to_o stint_v the_o state_n of_o glory_n to_o the_o peace_n and_o joy_n of_o this_o life_n only_o may_v justify_v his_o wrong_a opinion_n of_o we_o that_o we_o deny_v reward_n to_o come_v but_o it_o cut_v off_o from_o our_o steadfast_a faith_n in_o a_o everlasting_a mansion_n of_o glory_n and_o blessedness_n which_o from_o the_o light_n within_o to_o all_o who_o obey_v it_o shall_v spring_v as_o a_o river_n and_o flow_v as_o a_o inexhaustible_a fountain_n and_o j._n faldo_n shall_v never_o know_v true_a peace_n another_o way_n that_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o he_o j._n f._n pag._n 70._o preach_v for_o hire_n hireling_n say_v he_o to_o have_v a_o provision_n for_o the_o outward_a man_n as_o a_o maintenance_n for_o preach_v though_o no_o bargain_n be_v make_v yea_o though_o such_o who_o receive_v it_o will_v preach_v if_o they_o have_v never_o a_o penny_n reward_n in_o this_o world_n from_o